9682 lines
418 KiB
Plaintext
9682 lines
418 KiB
Plaintext
Project Gutenberg Etext of Moon and Sixpence by Somerset Maugham
|
|
|
|
Please take a look at the important information in this header.
|
|
We encourage you to keep this file on your own disk, keeping an
|
|
electronic path open for the next readers. Do not remove this.
|
|
|
|
|
|
**Welcome To The World of Free Plain Vanilla Electronic Texts**
|
|
|
|
**Etexts Readable By Both Humans and By Computers, Since 1971**
|
|
|
|
*These Etexts Prepared By Hundreds of Volunteers and Donations*
|
|
|
|
Information on contacting Project Gutenberg to get Etexts, and
|
|
further information is included below. We need your donations.
|
|
|
|
|
|
Moon and Sixpence, by Somerset Maugham
|
|
|
|
February, 1995 [Etext #222]
|
|
|
|
|
|
Project Gutenberg Etext of Moon and Sixpence by Somerset Maugham
|
|
*****This file should be named moona10.txt or moona10.zip******
|
|
|
|
Corrected EDITIONS of our etexts get a new NUMBER, moona10.txt.
|
|
VERSIONS based on separate sources get new LETTER, moona10a.txt.
|
|
|
|
|
|
This etext was created by Charles Keller and John Hamm.
|
|
|
|
|
|
We are now trying to release all our books one month in advance
|
|
of the official release dates, for time for better editing.
|
|
|
|
Please note: neither this list nor its contents are final till
|
|
midnight of the last day of the month of any such announcement.
|
|
The official release date of all Project Gutenberg Etexts is at
|
|
Midnight, Central Time, of the last day of the stated month. A
|
|
preliminary version may often be posted for suggestion, comment
|
|
and editing by those who wish to do so. To be sure you have an
|
|
up to date first edition [xxxxx10x.xxx] please check file sizes
|
|
in the first week of the next month. Since our ftp program has
|
|
a bug in it that scrambles the date [tried to fix and failed] a
|
|
look at the file size will have to do, but we will try to see a
|
|
new copy has at least one byte more or less.
|
|
|
|
|
|
Information about Project Gutenberg (one page)
|
|
|
|
We produce about two million dollars for each hour we work. The
|
|
fifty hours is one conservative estimate for how long it we take
|
|
to get any etext selected, entered, proofread, edited, copyright
|
|
searched and analyzed, the copyright letters written, etc. This
|
|
projected audience is one hundred million readers. If our value
|
|
per text is nominally estimated at one dollar then we produce $4
|
|
million dollars per hour this year as we release some eight text
|
|
files per month: thus upping our productivity from $2 million.
|
|
|
|
The Goal of Project Gutenberg is to Give Away One Trillion Etext
|
|
Files by the December 31, 2001. [10,000 x 100,000,000=Trillion]
|
|
This is ten thousand titles each to one hundred million readers,
|
|
which is 10% of the expected number of computer users by the end
|
|
of the year 2001.
|
|
|
|
We need your donations more than ever!
|
|
|
|
All donations should be made to "Project Gutenberg/IBC", and are
|
|
tax deductible to the extent allowable by law ("IBC" is Illinois
|
|
Benedictine College). (Subscriptions to our paper newsletter go
|
|
to IBC, too)
|
|
|
|
For these and other matters, please mail to:
|
|
|
|
Project Gutenberg
|
|
P. O. Box 2782
|
|
Champaign, IL 61825
|
|
|
|
When all other email fails try our Michael S. Hart, Executive
|
|
Director:
|
|
hart@vmd.cso.uiuc.edu (internet) hart@uiucvmd (bitnet)
|
|
|
|
We would prefer to send you this information by email
|
|
(Internet, Bitnet, Compuserve, ATTMAIL or MCImail).
|
|
|
|
******
|
|
If you have an FTP program (or emulator), please
|
|
FTP directly to the Project Gutenberg archives:
|
|
[Mac users, do NOT point and click. . .type]
|
|
|
|
ftp mrcnext.cso.uiuc.edu
|
|
login: anonymous
|
|
password: your@login
|
|
cd etext/etext90 through /etext95
|
|
or cd etext/articles [get suggest gut for more information]
|
|
dir [to see files]
|
|
get or mget [to get files. . .set bin for zip files]
|
|
GET INDEX?00.GUT
|
|
for a list of books
|
|
and
|
|
GET NEW GUT for general information
|
|
and
|
|
MGET GUT* for newsletters.
|
|
|
|
**Information prepared by the Project Gutenberg legal advisor**
|
|
(Three Pages)
|
|
|
|
|
|
***START**THE SMALL PRINT!**FOR PUBLIC DOMAIN ETEXTS**START***
|
|
Why is this "Small Print!" statement here? You know: lawyers.
|
|
They tell us you might sue us if there is something wrong with
|
|
your copy of this etext, even if you got it for free from
|
|
someone other than us, and even if what's wrong is not our
|
|
fault. So, among other things, this "Small Print!" statement
|
|
disclaims most of our liability to you. It also tells you how
|
|
you can distribute copies of this etext if you want to.
|
|
|
|
*BEFORE!* YOU USE OR READ THIS ETEXT
|
|
By using or reading any part of this PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
|
|
etext, you indicate that you understand, agree to and accept
|
|
this "Small Print!" statement. If you do not, you can receive
|
|
a refund of the money (if any) you paid for this etext by
|
|
sending a request within 30 days of receiving it to the person
|
|
you got it from. If you received this etext on a physical
|
|
medium (such as a disk), you must return it with your request.
|
|
|
|
ABOUT PROJECT GUTENBERG-TM ETEXTS
|
|
This PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm etext, like most PROJECT GUTENBERG-
|
|
tm etexts, is a "public domain" work distributed by Professor
|
|
Michael S. Hart through the Project Gutenberg Association at
|
|
Illinois Benedictine College (the "Project"). Among other
|
|
things, this means that no one owns a United States copyright
|
|
on or for this work, so the Project (and you!) can copy and
|
|
distribute it in the United States without permission and
|
|
without paying copyright royalties. Special rules, set forth
|
|
below, apply if you wish to copy and distribute this etext
|
|
under the Project's "PROJECT GUTENBERG" trademark.
|
|
|
|
To create these etexts, the Project expends considerable
|
|
efforts to identify, transcribe and proofread public domain
|
|
works. Despite these efforts, the Project's etexts and any
|
|
medium they may be on may contain "Defects". Among other
|
|
things, Defects may take the form of incomplete, inaccurate or
|
|
corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
|
|
intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged
|
|
disk or other etext medium, a computer virus, or computer
|
|
codes that damage or cannot be read by your equipment.
|
|
|
|
LIMITED WARRANTY; DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES
|
|
But for the "Right of Replacement or Refund" described below,
|
|
[1] the Project (and any other party you may receive this
|
|
etext from as a PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm etext) disclaims all
|
|
liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including
|
|
legal fees, and [2] YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE OR
|
|
UNDER STRICT LIABILITY, OR FOR BREACH OF WARRANTY OR CONTRACT,
|
|
INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE
|
|
OR INCIDENTAL DAMAGES, EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE
|
|
POSSIBILITY OF SUCH DAMAGES.
|
|
|
|
If you discover a Defect in this etext within 90 days of
|
|
receiving it, you can receive a refund of the money (if any)
|
|
you paid for it by sending an explanatory note within that
|
|
time to the person you received it from. If you received it
|
|
on a physical medium, you must return it with your note, and
|
|
such person may choose to alternatively give you a replacement
|
|
copy. If you received it electronically, such person may
|
|
choose to alternatively give you a second opportunity to
|
|
receive it electronically.
|
|
|
|
THIS ETEXT IS OTHERWISE PROVIDED TO YOU "AS-IS". NO OTHER
|
|
WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, ARE MADE TO YOU AS
|
|
TO THE ETEXT OR ANY MEDIUM IT MAY BE ON, INCLUDING BUT NOT
|
|
LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR A
|
|
PARTICULAR PURPOSE.
|
|
|
|
Some states do not allow disclaimers of implied warranties or
|
|
the exclusion or limitation of consequential damages, so the
|
|
above disclaimers and exclusions may not apply to you, and you
|
|
may have other legal rights.
|
|
|
|
INDEMNITY
|
|
You will indemnify and hold the Project, its directors,
|
|
officers, members and agents harmless from all liability, cost
|
|
and expense, including legal fees, that arise directly or
|
|
indirectly from any of the following that you do or cause:
|
|
[1] distribution of this etext, [2] alteration, modification,
|
|
or addition to the etext, or [3] any Defect.
|
|
|
|
DISTRIBUTION UNDER "PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm"
|
|
You may distribute copies of this etext electronically, or by
|
|
disk, book or any other medium if you either delete this
|
|
"Small Print!" and all other references to Project Gutenberg,
|
|
or:
|
|
|
|
[1] Only give exact copies of it. Among other things, this
|
|
requires that you do not remove, alter or modify the
|
|
etext or this "small print!" statement. You may however,
|
|
if you wish, distribute this etext in machine readable
|
|
binary, compressed, mark-up, or proprietary form,
|
|
including any form resulting from conversion by word pro-
|
|
cessing or hypertext software, but only so long as
|
|
*EITHER*:
|
|
|
|
[*] The etext, when displayed, is clearly readable, and
|
|
does *not* contain characters other than those
|
|
intended by the author of the work, although tilde
|
|
(~), asterisk (*) and underline (_) characters may
|
|
be used to convey punctuation intended by the
|
|
author, and additional characters may be used to
|
|
indicate hypertext links; OR
|
|
|
|
[*] The etext may be readily converted by the reader at
|
|
no expense into plain ASCII, EBCDIC or equivalent
|
|
form by the program that displays the etext (as is
|
|
the case, for instance, with most word processors);
|
|
OR
|
|
|
|
[*] You provide, or agree to also provide on request at
|
|
no additional cost, fee or expense, a copy of the
|
|
etext in its original plain ASCII form (or in EBCDIC
|
|
or other equivalent proprietary form).
|
|
|
|
[2] Honor the etext refund and replacement provisions of this
|
|
"Small Print!" statement.
|
|
|
|
[3] Pay a trademark license fee to the Project of 20% of the
|
|
net profits you derive calculated using the method you
|
|
already use to calculate your applicable taxes. If you
|
|
don't derive profits, no royalty is due. Royalties are
|
|
payable to "Project Gutenberg Association / Illinois
|
|
Benedictine College" within the 60 days following each
|
|
date you prepare (or were legally required to prepare)
|
|
your annual (or equivalent periodic) tax return.
|
|
|
|
WHAT IF YOU *WANT* TO SEND MONEY EVEN IF YOU DON'T HAVE TO?
|
|
The Project gratefully accepts contributions in money, time,
|
|
scanning machines, OCR software, public domain etexts, royalty
|
|
free copyright licenses, and every other sort of contribution
|
|
you can think of. Money should be paid to "Project Gutenberg
|
|
Association / Illinois Benedictine College".
|
|
|
|
This "Small Print!" by Charles B. Kramer, Attorney
|
|
Internet (72600.2026@compuserve.com); TEL: (212-254-5093)
|
|
*END*THE SMALL PRINT! FOR PUBLIC DOMAIN ETEXTS*Ver.04.29.93*END*
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
The Moon and Sixpence
|
|
|
|
by W. Somerset Maugham
|
|
|
|
Author of "Of Human Bondage"
|
|
|
|
|
|
THE MOON AND SIXPENCE
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
The Moon and Sixpence
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter I
|
|
|
|
|
|
I confess that when first I made acquaintance with Charles
|
|
Strickland I never for a moment discerned that there was in
|
|
him anything out of the ordinary. Yet now few will be found
|
|
to deny his greatness. I do not speak of that greatness which
|
|
is achieved by the fortunate politician or the successful
|
|
soldier; that is a quality which belongs to the place he
|
|
occupies rather than to the man; and a change of circumstances
|
|
reduces it to very discreet proportions. The Prime Minister
|
|
out of office is seen, too often, to have been but a pompous
|
|
rhetorician, and the General without an army is but the tame
|
|
hero of a market town. The greatness of Charles Strickland
|
|
was authentic. It may be that you do not like his art, but at
|
|
all events you can hardly refuse it the tribute of your
|
|
interest. He disturbs and arrests. The time has passed when
|
|
he was an object of ridicule, and it is no longer a mark of
|
|
eccentricity to defend or of perversity to extol him.
|
|
His faults are accepted as the necessary complement to his merits.
|
|
It is still possible to discuss his place in art, and the
|
|
adulation of his admirers is perhaps no less capricious than
|
|
the disparagement of his detractors; but one thing can never
|
|
be doubtful, and that is that he had genius. To my mind the
|
|
most interesting thing in art is the personality of the
|
|
artist; and if that is singular, I am willing to excuse a
|
|
thousand faults. I suppose Velasquez was a better painter
|
|
than El Greco, but custom stales one's admiration for him:
|
|
the Cretan, sensual and tragic, proffers the mystery of his
|
|
soul like a standing sacrifice. The artist, painter, poet, or
|
|
musician, by his decoration, sublime or beautiful, satisfies
|
|
the aesthetic sense; but that is akin to the sexual instinct,
|
|
and shares its barbarity: he lays before you also the greater
|
|
gift of himself. To pursue his secret has something of the
|
|
fascination of a detective story. It is a riddle which shares
|
|
with the universe the merit of having no answer. The most
|
|
insignificant of Strickland's works suggests a personality
|
|
which is strange, tormented, and complex; and it is this
|
|
surely which prevents even those who do not like his pictures
|
|
from being indifferent to them; it is this which has excited
|
|
so curious an interest in his life and character.
|
|
|
|
It was not till four years after Strickland's death that
|
|
Maurice Huret wrote that article in the <i Mercure de France>
|
|
which rescued the unknown painter from oblivion and blazed the
|
|
trail which succeeding writers, with more or less docility,
|
|
have followed. For a long time no critic has enjoyed in
|
|
France a more incontestable authority, and it was impossible
|
|
not to be impressed by the claims he made; they seemed
|
|
extravagant; but later judgments have confirmed his estimate,
|
|
and the reputation of Charles Strickland is now firmly
|
|
established on the lines which he laid down. The rise of this
|
|
reputation is one of the most romantic incidents in the
|
|
history of art. But I do not propose to deal with Charles
|
|
Strickland's work except in so far as it touches upon
|
|
his character. I cannot agree with the painters who claim
|
|
superciliously that the layman can understand nothing of
|
|
painting, and that he can best show his appreciation of their
|
|
works by silence and a cheque-book. It is a grotesque
|
|
misapprehension which sees in art no more than a craft
|
|
comprehensible perfectly only to the craftsman: art is a
|
|
manifestation of emotion, and emotion speaks a language that
|
|
all may understand. But I will allow that the critic who has
|
|
not a practical knowledge of technique is seldom able to say
|
|
anything on the subject of real value, and my ignorance of
|
|
painting is extreme. Fortunately, there is no need for me to
|
|
risk the adventure, since my friend, Mr. Edward Leggatt, an
|
|
able writer as well as an admirable painter, has exhaustively
|
|
discussed Charles Strickland's work in a little book[1] which
|
|
is a charming example of a style, for the most part, less
|
|
happily cultivated in England than in France.
|
|
|
|
|
|
[1] "A Modern Artist: Notes on the Work of Charles
|
|
Strickland," by Edward Leggatt, A.R.H.A. Martin Secker, 1917.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Maurice Huret in his famous article gave an outline of Charles
|
|
Strickland's life which was well calculated to whet the
|
|
appetites of the inquiring. With his disinterested passion
|
|
for art, he had a real desire to call the attention of the
|
|
wise to a talent which was in the highest degree original;
|
|
but he was too good a journalist to be unaware that the "human
|
|
interest" would enable him more easily to effect his purpose.
|
|
And when such as had come in contact with Strickland in the
|
|
past, writers who had known him in London, painters who had
|
|
met him in the cafes of Montmartre, discovered to their
|
|
amazement that where they had seen but an unsuccessful artist,
|
|
like another, authentic genius had rubbed shoulders with them
|
|
there began to appear in the magazines of France and America a
|
|
succession of articles, the reminiscences of one, the
|
|
appreciation of another, which added to Strickland's
|
|
notoriety, and fed without satisfying the curiosity of
|
|
the public. The subject was grateful, and the industrious
|
|
Weitbrecht-Rotholz in his imposing monograph[2] has been able
|
|
to give a remarkable list of authorities.
|
|
|
|
|
|
[2] "Karl Strickland: sein Leben und seine Kunst," by Hugo
|
|
Weitbrecht-Rotholz, Ph.D. Schwingel und Hanisch. Leipzig, 1914.
|
|
|
|
|
|
The faculty for myth is innate in the human race. It seizes
|
|
with avidity upon any incidents, surprising or mysterious, in
|
|
the career of those who have at all distinguished themselves
|
|
from their fellows, and invents a legend to which it then
|
|
attaches a fanatical belief. It is the protest of romance
|
|
against the commonplace of life. The incidents of the legend
|
|
become the hero's surest passport to immortality. The ironic
|
|
philosopher reflects with a smile that Sir Walter Raleigh is
|
|
more safely inshrined in the memory of mankind because he set
|
|
his cloak for the Virgin Queen to walk on than because he
|
|
carried the English name to undiscovered countries.
|
|
Charles Strickland lived obscurely. He made enemies rather
|
|
than friends. It is not strange, then, that those who wrote of
|
|
him should have eked out their scanty recollections with a
|
|
lively fancy, and it is evident that there was enough in the
|
|
little that was known of him to give opportunity to the romantic
|
|
scribe; there was much in his life which was strange and terrible,
|
|
in his character something outrageous, and in his fate
|
|
not a little that was pathetic. In due course a legend arose
|
|
of such circumstantiality that the wise historian would
|
|
hesitate to attack it.
|
|
|
|
But a wise historian is precisely what the Rev. Robert
|
|
Strickland is not. He wrote his biography[3] avowedly to
|
|
"remove certain misconceptions which had gained currency" in
|
|
regard to the later part of his father's life, and which had
|
|
"caused considerable pain to persons still living." It is
|
|
obvious that there was much in the commonly received account
|
|
of Strickland's life to embarrass a respectable family.
|
|
I have read this work with a good deal of amusement, and upon
|
|
this I congratulate myself, since it is colourless and dull.
|
|
Mr. Strickland has drawn the portrait of an excellent husband
|
|
and father, a man of kindly temper, industrious habits, and
|
|
moral disposition. The modern clergyman has acquired in his
|
|
study of the science which I believe is called exegesis an
|
|
astonishing facility for explaining things away, but the
|
|
subtlety with which the Rev. Robert Strickland has
|
|
"interpreted" all the facts in his father's life which a
|
|
dutiful son might find it inconvenient to remember must surely
|
|
lead him in the fullness of time to the highest dignities of
|
|
the Church. I see already his muscular calves encased in the
|
|
gaiters episcopal. It was a hazardous, though maybe a gallant
|
|
thing to do, since it is probable that the legend commonly
|
|
received has had no small share in the growth of Strickland's
|
|
reputation; for there are many who have been attracted to his
|
|
art by the detestation in which they held his character or the
|
|
compassion with which they regarded his death; and the son's
|
|
well-meaning efforts threw a singular chill upon the father's
|
|
admirers. It is due to no accident that when one of his most
|
|
important works, <i The Woman of Samaria>,[4] was sold at
|
|
Christie's shortly after the discussion which followed the
|
|
publication of Mr. Strickland's biography, it fetched POUNDS
|
|
235 less than it had done nine months before when it was
|
|
bought by the distinguished collector whose sudden death had
|
|
brought it once more under the hammer. Perhaps Charles
|
|
Strickland's power and originality would scarcely have
|
|
sufficed to turn the scale if the remarkable mythopoeic
|
|
faculty of mankind had not brushed aside with impatience a
|
|
story which disappointed all its craving for the
|
|
extraordinary. And presently Dr. Weitbrecht-Rotholz produced
|
|
the work which finally set at rest the misgivings of all
|
|
lovers of art.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
[3] "Strickland: The Man and His Work," by his son, Robert
|
|
Strickland. Wm. Heinemann, 1913.
|
|
|
|
|
|
[4] This was described in Christie's catalogue as follows:
|
|
"A nude woman, a native of the Society Islands, is lying on
|
|
the ground beside a brook. Behind is a tropical Landscape
|
|
with palm-trees, bananas, etc. 60 in. x 48 in."
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Dr. Weitbrecht-Rotholz belongs to that school of historians
|
|
which believes that human nature is not only about as bad as
|
|
it can be, but a great deal worse; and certainly the reader is
|
|
safer of entertainment in their hands than in those of the
|
|
writers who take a malicious pleasure in representing the
|
|
great figures of romance as patterns of the domestic virtues.
|
|
For my part, I should be sorry to think that there was nothing
|
|
between Anthony and Cleopatra but an economic situation; and
|
|
it will require a great deal more evidence than is ever likely
|
|
to be available, thank God, to persuade me that Tiberius was
|
|
as blameless a monarch as King George V. Dr. Weitbrecht-Rotholz
|
|
has dealt in such terms with the Rev. Robert Strickland's
|
|
innocent biography that it is difficult to avoid
|
|
feeling a certain sympathy for the unlucky parson. His decent
|
|
reticence is branded as hypocrisy, his circumlocutions are
|
|
roundly called lies, and his silence is vilified as treachery.
|
|
And on the strength of peccadillos, reprehensible in an
|
|
author, but excusable in a son, the Anglo-Saxon race is
|
|
accused of prudishness, humbug, pretentiousness, deceit,
|
|
cunning, and bad cooking. Personally I think it was rash of
|
|
Mr. Strickland, in refuting the account which had gained
|
|
belief of a certain "unpleasantness" between his father and
|
|
mother, to state that Charles Strickland in a letter written
|
|
from Paris had described her as "an excellent woman," since
|
|
Dr. Weitbrecht-Rotholz was able to print the letter in
|
|
facsimile, and it appears that the passage referred to ran in
|
|
fact as follows: <i God damn my wife. She is an excellent woman.
|
|
I wish she was in hell.> It is not thus that the Church
|
|
in its great days dealt with evidence that was unwelcome.
|
|
|
|
Dr. Weitbrecht-Rotholz was an enthusiastic admirer of Charles
|
|
Strickland, and there was no danger that he would whitewash him.
|
|
He had an unerring eye for the despicable motive in
|
|
actions that had all the appearance of innocence. He was a
|
|
psycho-pathologist, as well as a student of art, and the
|
|
subconscious had few secrets from him. No mystic ever saw
|
|
deeper meaning in common things. The mystic sees the
|
|
ineffable, and the psycho-pathologist the unspeakable.
|
|
There is a singular fascination in watching the eagerness with
|
|
which the learned author ferrets out every circumstance which may
|
|
throw discredit on his hero. His heart warms to him when he
|
|
can bring forward some example of cruelty or meanness, and he
|
|
exults like an inquisitor at the <i auto da fe> of an heretic
|
|
when with some forgotten story he can confound the filial piety
|
|
of the Rev. Robert Strickland. His industry has been amazing.
|
|
Nothing has been too small to escape him, and you
|
|
may be sure that if Charles Strickland left a laundry bill
|
|
unpaid it will be given you <i in extenso>, and if he forebore
|
|
to return a borrowed half-crown no detail of the transaction
|
|
will be omitted.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter II
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
When so much has been written about Charles Strickland, it may
|
|
seem unnecessary that I should write more. A painter's
|
|
monument is his work. It is true I knew him more intimately
|
|
than most: I met him first before ever he became a painter,
|
|
and I saw him not infrequently during the difficult years he
|
|
spent in Paris; but I do not suppose I should ever have set
|
|
down my recollections if the hazards of the war had not taken
|
|
me to Tahiti. There, as is notorious, he spent the last years
|
|
of his life; and there I came across persons who were familiar
|
|
with him. I find myself in a position to throw light on just
|
|
that part of his tragic career which has remained most obscure.
|
|
If they who believe in Strickland's greatness are right,
|
|
the personal narratives of such as knew him in the
|
|
flesh can hardly be superfluous. What would we not give for
|
|
the reminiscences of someone who had been as intimately
|
|
acquainted with El Greco as I was with Strickland?
|
|
|
|
But I seek refuge in no such excuses. I forget who it was
|
|
that recommended men for their soul's good to do each day two
|
|
things they disliked: it was a wise man, and it is a precept
|
|
that I have followed scrupulously; for every day I have got up
|
|
and I have gone to bed. But there is in my nature a strain of
|
|
asceticism, and I have subjected my flesh each week to a more
|
|
severe mortification. I have never failed to read the Literary
|
|
Supplement of <i The Times>. It is a salutary discipline to
|
|
consider the vast number of books that are written, the fair
|
|
hopes with which their authors see them published, and the
|
|
fate which awaits them. What chance is there that any book
|
|
will make its way among that multitude? And the successful
|
|
books are but the successes of a season. Heaven knows what
|
|
pains the author has been at, what bitter experiences he has
|
|
endured and what heartache suffered, to give some chance
|
|
reader a few hours' relaxation or to while away the tedium of
|
|
a journey. And if I may judge from the reviews, many of these
|
|
books are well and carefully written; much thought has gone to
|
|
their composition; to some even has been given the anxious
|
|
labour of a lifetime. The moral I draw is that the writer
|
|
should seek his reward in the pleasure of his work and in
|
|
release from the burden of his thought; and, indifferent to aught
|
|
else, care nothing for praise or censure, failure or success.
|
|
|
|
Now the war has come, bringing with it a new attitude.
|
|
Youth has turned to gods we of an earlier day knew not, and it
|
|
is possible to see already the direction in which those who come
|
|
after us will move. The younger generation, conscious of
|
|
strength and tumultuous, have done with knocking at the door;
|
|
they have burst in and seated themselves in our seats.
|
|
The air is noisy with their shouts. Of their elders some, by
|
|
imitating the antics of youth, strive to persuade themselves
|
|
that their day is not yet over; they shout with the lustiest,
|
|
but the war cry sounds hollow in their mouth; they are like
|
|
poor wantons attempting with pencil, paint and powder, with
|
|
shrill gaiety, to recover the illusion of their spring.
|
|
The wiser go their way with a decent grace. In their chastened
|
|
smile is an indulgent mockery. They remember that they too
|
|
trod down a sated generation, with just such clamor and with
|
|
just such scorn, and they foresee that these brave torch-bearers
|
|
will presently yield their place also. There is no last word.
|
|
The new evangel was old when Nineveh reared her greatness
|
|
to the sky. These gallant words which seem so novel to those
|
|
that speak them were said in accents scarcely changed a hundred
|
|
times before. The pendulum swings backwards and forwards.
|
|
The circle is ever travelled anew.
|
|
|
|
Sometimes a man survives a considerable time from an era in
|
|
which he had his place into one which is strange to him, and
|
|
then the curious are offered one of the most singular
|
|
spectacles in the human comedy. Who now, for example, thinks
|
|
of George Crabbe? He was a famous poet in his day, and the
|
|
world recognised his genius with a unanimity which the greater
|
|
complexity of modern life has rendered infrequent. He had
|
|
learnt his craft at the school of Alexander Pope, and he wrote
|
|
moral stories in rhymed couplets. Then came the French
|
|
Revolution and the Napoleonic Wars, and the poets sang new songs.
|
|
Mr. Crabbe continued to write moral stories in rhymed couplets.
|
|
I think he must have read the verse of these young
|
|
men who were making so great a stir in the world, and I fancy
|
|
he found it poor stuff. Of course, much of it was. But the
|
|
odes of Keats and of Wordsworth, a poem or two by Coleridge, a
|
|
few more by Shelley, discovered vast realms of the spirit that
|
|
none had explored before. Mr. Crabbe was as dead as mutton,
|
|
but Mr. Crabbe continued to write moral stories in rhymed couplets.
|
|
I have read desultorily the writings of the younger generation.
|
|
It may be that among them a more fervid Keats, a more
|
|
ethereal Shelley, has already published numbers the world
|
|
will willingly remember. I cannot tell. I admire their
|
|
polish -- their youth is already so accomplished that it seems
|
|
absurd to speak of promise -- I marvel at the felicity of
|
|
their style; but with all their copiousness (their vocabulary
|
|
suggests that they fingered Roget's <i Thesaurus> in their
|
|
cradles) they say nothing to me: to my mind they know too
|
|
much and feel too obviously; I cannot stomach the heartiness
|
|
with which they slap me on the back or the emotion with which
|
|
they hurl themselves on my bosom; their passion seems to me a
|
|
little anaemic and their dreams a trifle dull. I do not like them.
|
|
I am on the shelf. I will continue to write moral stories in
|
|
rhymed couplets. But I should be thrice a fool if I did it for
|
|
aught but my own entertainment.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter III
|
|
|
|
|
|
But all this is by the way.
|
|
|
|
I was very young when I wrote my first book. By a lucky chance
|
|
it excited attention, and various persons sought my acquaintance.
|
|
|
|
It is not without melancholy that I wander among my
|
|
recollections of the world of letters in London when first,
|
|
bashful but eager, I was introduced to it. It is long since I
|
|
frequented it, and if the novels that describe its present
|
|
singularities are accurate much in it is now changed. The
|
|
venue is different. Chelsea and Bloomsbury have taken the
|
|
place of Hampstead, Notting Hill Gate, and High Street, Kensington.
|
|
Then it was a distinction to be under forty, but now to
|
|
be more than twenty-five is absurd. I think in those
|
|
days we were a little shy of our emotions, and the fear of
|
|
ridicule tempered the more obvious forms of pretentiousness.
|
|
I do not believe that there was in that genteel Bohemia an
|
|
intensive culture of chastity, but I do not remember so crude
|
|
a promiscuity as seems to be practised in the present day.
|
|
We did not think it hypocritical to draw over our vagaries the
|
|
curtain of a decent silence. The spade was not invariably
|
|
called a bloody shovel. Woman had not yet altogether come
|
|
into her own.
|
|
|
|
I lived near Victoria Station, and I recall long excursions by
|
|
bus to the hospitable houses of the literary. In my timidity
|
|
I wandered up and down the street while I screwed up my
|
|
courage to ring the bell; and then, sick with apprehension,
|
|
was ushered into an airless room full of people. I was
|
|
introduced to this celebrated person after that one, and the
|
|
kind words they said about my book made me excessively
|
|
uncomfortable. I felt they expected me to say clever things,
|
|
and I never could think of any till after the party was over.
|
|
I tried to conceal my embarrassment by handing round cups of
|
|
tea and rather ill-cut bread-and-butter. I wanted no one to
|
|
take notice of me, so that I could observe these famous
|
|
creatures at my ease and listen to the clever things they said.
|
|
|
|
I have a recollection of large, unbending women with great
|
|
noses and rapacious eyes, who wore their clothes as though
|
|
they were armour; and of little, mouse-like spinsters, with
|
|
soft voices and a shrewd glance. I never ceased to be
|
|
fascinated by their persistence in eating buttered toast with
|
|
their gloves on, and I observed with admiration the unconcern
|
|
with which they wiped their fingers on their chair when they
|
|
thought no one was looking. It must have been bad for the
|
|
furniture, but I suppose the hostess took her revenge on the
|
|
furniture of her friends when, in turn, she visited them.
|
|
Some of them were dressed fashionably, and they said they
|
|
couldn't for the life of them see why you should be dowdy just
|
|
because you had written a novel; if you had a neat figure you
|
|
might as well make the most of it, and a smart shoe on a small
|
|
foot had never prevented an editor from taking your "stuff."
|
|
But others thought this frivolous, and they wore "art fabrics"
|
|
and barbaric jewelry. The men were seldom eccentric in appearance.
|
|
They tried to look as little like authors as possible.
|
|
They wished to be taken for men of the world, and could
|
|
have passed anywhere for the managing clerks of a city firm.
|
|
They always seemed a little tired. I had never known
|
|
writers before, and I found them very strange, but I do not
|
|
think they ever seemed to me quite real.
|
|
|
|
I remember that I thought their conversation brilliant, and I
|
|
used to listen with astonishment to the stinging humour with
|
|
which they would tear a brother-author to pieces the moment
|
|
that his back was turned. The artist has this advantage over
|
|
the rest of the world, that his friends offer not only their
|
|
appearance and their character to his satire, but also their work.
|
|
I despaired of ever expressing myself with such aptness
|
|
or with such fluency. In those days conversation was still
|
|
cultivated as an art; a neat repartee was more highly valued than
|
|
the crackling of thorns under a pot; and the epigram, not yet
|
|
a mechanical appliance by which the dull may achieve a semblance
|
|
of wit, gave sprightliness to the small talk of the urbane.
|
|
It is sad that I can remember nothing of all this scintillation.
|
|
But I think the conversation never settled down so
|
|
comfortably as when it turned to the details of the
|
|
trade which was the other side of the art we practised.
|
|
When we had done discussing the merits of the latest book,
|
|
it was natural to wonder how many copies had been sold,
|
|
what advance the author had received, and how much he was likely
|
|
to make out of it. Then we would speak of this publisher and
|
|
of that, comparing the generosity of one with the meanness of another;
|
|
we would argue whether it was better to go to one who gave
|
|
handsome royalties or to another who "pushed" a book for all
|
|
it was worth. Some advertised badly and some well. Some were
|
|
modern and some were old-fashioned. Then we would talk of
|
|
agents and the offers they had obtained for us; of editors and
|
|
the sort of contributions they welcomed, how much they paid a
|
|
thousand, and whether they paid promptly or otherwise. To me
|
|
it was all very romantic. It gave me an intimate sense of
|
|
being a member of some mystic brotherhood.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter IV
|
|
|
|
|
|
No one was kinder to me at that time than Rose Waterford.
|
|
She combined a masculine intelligence with a feminine perversity,
|
|
and the novels she wrote were original and disconcerting.
|
|
It was at her house one day that I met Charles Strickland's wife.
|
|
Miss Waterford was giving a tea-party, and her small room was
|
|
more than usually full. Everyone seemed to be talking, and I,
|
|
sitting in silence, felt awkward; but I was too shy to break
|
|
into any of the groups that seemed absorbed in their own affairs.
|
|
Miss Waterford was a good hostess, and seeing my embarrassment
|
|
came up to me.
|
|
|
|
"I want you to talk to Mrs. Strickland," she said.
|
|
"She's raving about your book."
|
|
|
|
"What does she do?" I asked.
|
|
|
|
I was conscious of my ignorance, and if Mrs. Strickland was a
|
|
well-known writer I thought it as well to ascertain the fact
|
|
before I spoke to her.
|
|
|
|
Rose Waterford cast down her eyes demurely to give greater
|
|
effect to her reply.
|
|
|
|
"She gives luncheon-parties. You've only got to roar a
|
|
little, and she'll ask you."
|
|
|
|
Rose Waterford was a cynic. She looked upon life as an
|
|
opportunity for writing novels and the public as her raw
|
|
material. Now and then she invited members of it to her house
|
|
if they showed an appreciation of her talent and entertained
|
|
with proper lavishness. She held their weakness for lions in
|
|
good-humoured contempt, but played to them her part of the
|
|
distinguished woman of letters with decorum.
|
|
|
|
I was led up to Mrs. Strickland, and for ten minutes we
|
|
talked together. I noticed nothing about her except that she
|
|
had a pleasant voice. She had a flat in Westminster, overlooking
|
|
the unfinished cathedral, and because we lived in the same
|
|
neighbourhood we felt friendly disposed to one another.
|
|
The Army and Navy Stores are a bond of union between all who dwell
|
|
between the river and St. James's Park. Mrs. Strickland asked
|
|
me for my address, and a few days later I received an
|
|
invitation to luncheon.
|
|
|
|
My engagements were few, and I was glad to accept. When I
|
|
arrived, a little late, because in my fear of being too early
|
|
I had walked three times round the cathedral, I found the
|
|
party already complete. Miss Waterford was there and Mrs. Jay,
|
|
Richard Twining and George Road. We were all writers.
|
|
It was a fine day, early in spring, and we were in a good humour.
|
|
We talked about a hundred things. Miss Waterford,
|
|
torn between the aestheticism of her early youth, when she
|
|
used to go to parties in sage green, holding a daffodil, and
|
|
the flippancy of her maturer years, which tended to high heels
|
|
and Paris frocks, wore a new hat. It put her in high spirits.
|
|
I had never heard her more malicious about our common friends.
|
|
Mrs. Jay, aware that impropriety is the soul of wit, made
|
|
observations in tones hardly above a whisper that might well
|
|
have tinged the snowy tablecloth with a rosy hue.
|
|
Richard Twining bubbled over with quaint absurdities, and
|
|
George Road, conscious that he need not exhibit a brilliancy which
|
|
was almost a by-word, opened his mouth only to put food into it.
|
|
Mrs. Strickland did not talk much, but she had a pleasant gift
|
|
for keeping the conversation general; and when there was a
|
|
pause she threw in just the right remark to set it going once more.
|
|
She was a woman of thirty-seven, rather tall and plump,
|
|
without being fat; she was not pretty, but her face was
|
|
pleasing, chiefly, perhaps, on account of her kind brown eyes.
|
|
Her skin was rather sallow. Her dark hair was elaborately dressed.
|
|
She was the only woman of the three whose face was
|
|
free of make-up, and by contrast with the others she seemed
|
|
simple and unaffected.
|
|
|
|
The dining-room was in the good taste of the period. It was
|
|
very severe. There was a high dado of white wood and a green
|
|
paper on which were etchings by Whistler in neat black frames.
|
|
The green curtains with their peacock design, hung in straight
|
|
lines, and the green carpet, in the pattern of which pale
|
|
rabbits frolicked among leafy trees, suggested the influence
|
|
of William Morris. There was blue delft on the chimneypiece.
|
|
At that time there must have been five hundred dining-rooms in
|
|
London decorated in exactly the same manner. It was chaste,
|
|
artistic, and dull.
|
|
|
|
When we left I walked away with Miss Waterford, and the fine
|
|
day and her new hat persuaded us to saunter through the Park.
|
|
|
|
"That was a very nice party," I said.
|
|
|
|
"Did you think the food was good? I told her that if she
|
|
wanted writers she must feed them well."
|
|
|
|
"Admirable advice," I answered. "But why does she want them?"
|
|
|
|
Miss Waterford shrugged her shoulders.
|
|
|
|
"She finds them amusing. She wants to be in the movement.
|
|
I fancy she's rather simple, poor dear, and she thinks we're
|
|
all wonderful. After all, it pleases her to ask us to luncheon,
|
|
and it doesn't hurt us. I like her for it."
|
|
|
|
Looking back, I think that Mrs. Strickland was the most
|
|
harmless of all the lion-hunters that pursue their quarry from
|
|
the rarefied heights of Hampstead to the nethermost studios of
|
|
Cheyne Walk. She had led a very quiet youth in the country,
|
|
and the books that came down from Mudie's Library brought with
|
|
them not only their own romance, but the romance of London.
|
|
She had a real passion for reading (rare in her kind, who for
|
|
the most part are more interested in the author than in his book,
|
|
in the painter than in his pictures), and she invented a
|
|
world of the imagination in which she lived with a freedom she
|
|
never acquired in the world of every day. When she came to
|
|
know writers it was like adventuring upon a stage which till
|
|
then she had known only from the other side of the footlights.
|
|
She saw them dramatically, and really seemed herself to live a
|
|
larger life because she entertained them and visited them in
|
|
their fastnesses. She accepted the rules with which they
|
|
played the game of life as valid for them, but never for a
|
|
moment thought of regulating her own conduct in accordance
|
|
with them. Their moral eccentricities, like their oddities of dress,
|
|
their wild theories and paradoxes, were an entertainment which
|
|
amused her, but had not the slightest influence on her convictions.
|
|
|
|
"Is there a Mr. Strickland?" I asked
|
|
|
|
"Oh yes; he's something in the city. I believe he's a
|
|
stockbroker. He's very dull."
|
|
|
|
"Are they good friends?"
|
|
|
|
"They adore one another. You'll meet him if you dine there.
|
|
But she doesn't often have people to dinner. He's very quiet.
|
|
He's not in the least interested in literature or the arts."
|
|
|
|
"Why do nice women marry dull men?"
|
|
|
|
"Because intelligent men won't marry nice women."
|
|
|
|
I could not think of any retort to this, so I asked if Mrs.
|
|
Strickland had children.
|
|
|
|
"Yes; she has a boy and a girl. They're both at school."
|
|
|
|
The subject was exhausted, and we began to talk of other things.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter V
|
|
|
|
|
|
During the summer I met Mrs. Strickland not infrequently.
|
|
I went now and then to pleasant little luncheons at her flat,
|
|
and to rather more formidable tea-parties. We took a fancy to
|
|
one another. I was very young, and perhaps she liked the idea
|
|
of guiding my virgin steps on the hard road of letters; while
|
|
for me it was pleasant to have someone I could go to with my
|
|
small troubles, certain of an attentive ear and reasonable
|
|
counsel. Mrs. Strickland had the gift of sympathy. It is a
|
|
charming faculty, but one often abused by those who are
|
|
conscious of its possession: for there is something ghoulish
|
|
in the avidity with which they will pounce upon the misfortune
|
|
of their friends so that they may exercise their dexterity.
|
|
It gushes forth like an oil-well, and the sympathetic pour out
|
|
their sympathy with an abandon that is sometimes embarrassing
|
|
to their victims. There are bosoms on which so many tears
|
|
have been shed that I cannot bedew them with mine.
|
|
Mrs. Strickland used her advantage with tact. You felt that you
|
|
obliged her by accepting her sympathy. When, in the
|
|
enthusiasm of my youth, I remarked on this to Rose Waterford,
|
|
she said:
|
|
|
|
"Milk is very nice, especially with a drop of brandy in it,
|
|
but the domestic cow is only too glad to be rid of it.
|
|
A swollen udder is very uncomfortable."
|
|
|
|
Rose Waterford had a blistering tongue. No one could say such
|
|
bitter things; on the other hand, no one could do more
|
|
charming ones.
|
|
|
|
There was another thing I liked in Mrs. Strickland.
|
|
She managed her surroundings with elegance. Her flat was always
|
|
neat and cheerful, gay with flowers, and the chintzes in the
|
|
drawing-room, notwithstanding their severe design, were bright
|
|
and pretty. The meals in the artistic little dining-room were
|
|
pleasant; the table looked nice, the two maids were trim and
|
|
comely; the food was well cooked. It was impossible not to
|
|
see that Mrs. Strickland was an excellent housekeeper.
|
|
And you felt sure that she was an admirable mother. There were
|
|
photographs in the drawing-room of her son and daughter.
|
|
The son -- his name was Robert -- was a boy of sixteen at Rugby;
|
|
and you saw him in flannels and a cricket cap, and again in a
|
|
tail-coat and a stand-up collar. He had his mother's candid
|
|
brow and fine, reflective eyes. He looked clean, healthy, and normal.
|
|
|
|
"I don't know that he's very clever," she said one day, when I
|
|
was looking at the photograph, "but I know he's good. He has
|
|
a charming character."
|
|
|
|
The daughter was fourteen. Her hair, thick and dark like her
|
|
mother's, fell over her shoulders in fine profusion, and she
|
|
had the same kindly expression and sedate, untroubled eyes.
|
|
|
|
"They're both of them the image of you," I said.
|
|
|
|
"Yes; I think they are more like me than their father."
|
|
|
|
"Why have you never let me meet him?" I asked.
|
|
|
|
"Would you like to?"
|
|
|
|
She smiled, her smile was really very sweet, and she blushed a
|
|
little; it was singular that a woman of that age should flush
|
|
so readily. Perhaps her naivete was her greatest charm.
|
|
|
|
"You know, he's not at all literary," she said. "He's a
|
|
perfect philistine."
|
|
|
|
She said this not disparagingly, but affectionately rather, as
|
|
though, by acknowledging the worst about him, she wished to
|
|
protect him from the aspersions of her friends.
|
|
|
|
"He's on the Stock Exchange, and he's a typical broker.
|
|
I think he'd bore you to death."
|
|
|
|
"Does he bore you?" I asked.
|
|
|
|
"You see, I happen to be his wife. I'm very fond of him."
|
|
|
|
She smiled to cover her shyness, and I fancied she had a fear
|
|
that I would make the sort of gibe that such a confession
|
|
could hardly have failed to elicit from Rose Waterford.
|
|
She hesitated a little. Her eyes grew tender.
|
|
|
|
"He doesn't pretend to be a genius. He doesn't even make much
|
|
money on the Stock Exchange. But he's awfully good and kind."
|
|
|
|
"I think I should like him very much."
|
|
|
|
"I'll ask you to dine with us quietly some time, but mind, you come
|
|
at your own risk; don't blame me if you have a very dull evening."
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter VI
|
|
|
|
|
|
But when at last I met Charles Strickland, it was under
|
|
circumstances which allowed me to do no more than just make
|
|
his acquaintance. One morning Mrs. Strickland sent me round a
|
|
note to say that she was giving a dinner-party that evening,
|
|
and one of her guests had failed her. She asked me to stop
|
|
the gap. She wrote:
|
|
|
|
|
|
"It's only decent to warn you that you will be bored to
|
|
extinction. It was a thoroughly dull party from the
|
|
beginning, but if you will come I shall be uncommonly grateful.
|
|
And you and I can have a little chat by ourselves."
|
|
|
|
|
|
It was only neighbourly to accept.
|
|
|
|
When Mrs. Strickland introduced me to her husband, he gave me
|
|
a rather indifferent hand to shake. Turning to him gaily,
|
|
she attempted a small jest.
|
|
|
|
"I asked him to show him that I really had a husband. I think
|
|
he was beginning to doubt it."
|
|
|
|
Strickland gave the polite little laugh with which people
|
|
acknowledge a facetiousness in which they see nothing funny,
|
|
but did not speak. New arrivals claimed my host's attention,
|
|
and I was left to myself. When at last we were all assembled,
|
|
waiting for dinner to be announced, I reflected, while I
|
|
chatted with the woman I had been asked to "take in," that
|
|
civilised man practises a strange ingenuity in wasting on
|
|
tedious exercises the brief span of his life. It was the kind
|
|
of party which makes you wonder why the hostess has troubled
|
|
to bid her guests, and why the guests have troubled to come.
|
|
There were ten people. They met with indifference, and would
|
|
part with relief. It was, of course, a purely social function.
|
|
The Stricklands "owed" dinners to a number of persons,
|
|
whom they took no interest in, and so had asked them;
|
|
these persons had accepted. Why? To avoid the tedium of
|
|
dining <i tete-a-tete>, to give their servants a rest, because
|
|
there was no reason to refuse, because they were "owed" a dinner.
|
|
|
|
The dining-room was inconveniently crowded. There was a K.C.
|
|
and his wife, a Government official and his wife,
|
|
Mrs. Strickland's sister and her husband, Colonel MacAndrew,
|
|
and the wife of a Member of Parliament. It was because the Member
|
|
of Parliament found that he could not leave the House that I had
|
|
been invited. The respectability of the party was portentous.
|
|
The women were too nice to be well dressed, and
|
|
too sure of their position to be amusing. The men were solid.
|
|
There was about all of them an air of well-satisfied prosperity.
|
|
|
|
Everyone talked a little louder than natural in an instinctive
|
|
desire to make the party go, and there was a great deal of
|
|
noise in the room. But there was no general conversation.
|
|
Each one talked to his neighbour; to his neighbour on the
|
|
right during the soup, fish, and entree; to his neighbour on
|
|
the left during the roast, sweet, and savoury. They talked of
|
|
the political situation and of golf, of their children and the
|
|
latest play, of the pictures at the Royal Academy, of the
|
|
weather and their plans for the holidays. There was never a
|
|
pause, and the noise grew louder. Mrs. Strickland might
|
|
congratulate herself that her party was a success.
|
|
Her husband played his part with decorum. Perhaps he did not talk
|
|
very much, and I fancied there was towards the end a look of
|
|
fatigue in the faces of the women on either side of him.
|
|
They were finding him heavy. Once or twice Mrs. Strickland's eyes
|
|
rested on him somewhat anxiously.
|
|
|
|
At last she rose and shepherded the ladies out of one room.
|
|
Strickland shut the door behind her, and, moving to the other
|
|
end of the table, took his place between the K.C. and the
|
|
Government official. He passed round the port again and
|
|
handed us cigars. The K.C. remarked on the excellence of the
|
|
wine, and Strickland told us where he got it. We began to
|
|
chat about vintages and tobacco. The K.C. told us of a case
|
|
he was engaged in, and the Colonel talked about polo. I had
|
|
nothing to say and so sat silent, trying politely to show
|
|
interest in the conversation; and because I thought no one was
|
|
in the least concerned with me, examined Strickland at my
|
|
ease. He was bigger than I expected: I do not know why I had
|
|
imagined him slender and of insignificant appearance; in point
|
|
of fact he was broad and heavy, with large hands and feet, and
|
|
he wore his evening clothes clumsily. He gave you somewhat
|
|
the idea of a coachman dressed up for the occasion. He was a
|
|
man of forty, not good-looking, and yet not ugly, for his
|
|
features were rather good; but they were all a little larger
|
|
than life-size, and the effect was ungainly. He was clean
|
|
shaven, and his large face looked uncomfortably naked.
|
|
His hair was reddish, cut very short, and his eyes were small,
|
|
blue or grey. He looked commonplace. I no longer wondered
|
|
that Mrs. Strickland felt a certain embarrassment about him;
|
|
he was scarcely a credit to a woman who wanted to make herself
|
|
a position in the world of art and letters. It was obvious
|
|
that he had no social gifts, but these a man can do without;
|
|
he had no eccentricity even, to take him out of the common run;
|
|
he was just a good, dull, honest, plain man. One would
|
|
admire his excellent qualities, but avoid his company.
|
|
He was null. He was probably a worthy member of society, a good
|
|
husband and father, an honest broker; but there was no reason
|
|
to waste one's time over him.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter VII
|
|
|
|
|
|
The season was drawing to its dusty end, and everyone I knew
|
|
was arranging to go away. Mrs. Strickland was taking her
|
|
family to the coast of Norfolk, so that the children might
|
|
have the sea and her husband golf. We said good-bye to one
|
|
another, and arranged to meet in the autumn. But on my last
|
|
day in town, coming out of the Stores, I met her with her son
|
|
and daughter; like myself, she had been making her final
|
|
purchases before leaving London, and we were both hot and tired.
|
|
I proposed that we should all go and eat ices in the park.
|
|
|
|
I think Mrs. Strickland was glad to show me her children,
|
|
and she accepted my invitation with alacrity. They were even
|
|
more attractive than their photographs had suggested, and she was
|
|
right to be proud of them. I was young enough for them not to
|
|
feel shy, and they chattered merrily about one thing and another.
|
|
They were extraordinarily nice, healthy young children.
|
|
It was very agreeable under the trees.
|
|
|
|
When in an hour they crowded into a cab to go home, I strolled
|
|
idly to my club. I was perhaps a little lonely, and it was
|
|
with a touch of envy that I thought of the pleasant family
|
|
life of which I had had a glimpse. They seemed devoted to one
|
|
another. They had little private jokes of their own which,
|
|
unintelligible to the outsider, amused them enormously.
|
|
Perhaps Charles Strickland was dull judged by a standard that
|
|
demanded above all things verbal scintillation; but his
|
|
intelligence was adequate to his surroundings, and that is a
|
|
passport, not only to reasonable success, but still more to
|
|
happiness. Mrs. Strickland was a charming woman, and she
|
|
loved him. I pictured their lives, troubled by no untoward
|
|
adventure, honest, decent, and, by reason of those two
|
|
upstanding, pleasant children, so obviously destined to carry
|
|
on the normal traditions of their race and station,
|
|
not without significance. They would grow old insensibly;
|
|
they would see their son and daughter come to years of reason,
|
|
marry in due course -- the one a pretty girl, future mother of
|
|
healthy children; the other a handsome, manly fellow,
|
|
obviously a soldier; and at last, prosperous in their
|
|
dignified retirement, beloved by their descendants, after a happy,
|
|
not unuseful life, in the fullness of their age they would
|
|
sink into the grave.
|
|
|
|
That must be the story of innumerable couples, and the pattern
|
|
of life it offers has a homely grace. It reminds you of a
|
|
placid rivulet, meandering smoothly through green pastures and
|
|
shaded by pleasant trees, till at last it falls into the vasty
|
|
sea; but the sea is so calm, so silent, so indifferent, that
|
|
you are troubled suddenly by a vague uneasiness. Perhaps it
|
|
is only by a kink in my nature, strong in me even in those days,
|
|
that I felt in such an existence, the share of the great
|
|
majority, something amiss. I recognised its social values,
|
|
I saw its ordered happiness, but a fever in my blood asked for a
|
|
wilder course. There seemed to me something alarming in such
|
|
easy delights. In my heart was a desire to live more dangerously.
|
|
I was not unprepared for jagged rocks and treacherous shoals if
|
|
I could only have change -- change and the excitement of
|
|
the unforeseen.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter VIII
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
On reading over what I have written of the Stricklands, I am
|
|
conscious that they must seem shadowy. I have been able to
|
|
invest them with none of those characteristics which make the
|
|
persons of a book exist with a real life of their own; and,
|
|
wondering if the fault is mine, I rack my brains to remember
|
|
idiosyncrasies which might lend them vividness. I feel that
|
|
by dwelling on some trick of speech or some queer habit I
|
|
should be able to give them a significance peculiar to themselves.
|
|
As they stand they are like the figures in an old tapestry;
|
|
they do not separate themselves from the background,
|
|
and at a distance seem to lose their pattern, so that you have
|
|
little but a pleasing piece of colour. My only excuse is that
|
|
the impression they made on me was no other. There was just
|
|
that shadowiness about them which you find in people whose
|
|
lives are part of the social organism, so that they exist in
|
|
it and by it only. They are like cells in the body, essential,
|
|
but, so long as they remain healthy, engulfed in
|
|
the momentous whole. The Stricklands were an average family
|
|
in the middle class. A pleasant, hospitable woman, with a
|
|
harmless craze for the small lions of literary society; a
|
|
rather dull man, doing his duty in that state of life in which
|
|
a merciful Providence had placed him; two nice-looking,
|
|
healthy children. Nothing could be more ordinary. I do not
|
|
know that there was anything about them to excite the
|
|
attention of the curious.
|
|
|
|
When I reflect on all that happened later, I ask myself if I
|
|
was thick-witted not to see that there was in Charles
|
|
Strickland at least something out of the common. Perhaps.
|
|
I think that I have gathered in the years that intervene between
|
|
then and now a fair knowledge of mankind, but even if when I first
|
|
met the Stricklands I had the experience which I have now,
|
|
I do not believe that I should have judged them
|
|
differently. But because I have learnt that man is incalculable,
|
|
I should not at this time of day be so surprised by the news
|
|
that reached me when in the early autumn I returned to London.
|
|
|
|
I had not been back twenty-four hours before I ran across Rose
|
|
Waterford in Jermyn Street.
|
|
|
|
"You look very gay and sprightly," I said. "What's the matter
|
|
with you?"
|
|
|
|
She smiled, and her eyes shone with a malice I knew already.
|
|
It meant that she had heard some scandal about one of her
|
|
friends, and the instinct of the literary woman was all alert.
|
|
|
|
"You did meet Charles Strickland, didn't you?"
|
|
|
|
Not only her face, but her whole body, gave a sense of alacrity.
|
|
I nodded. I wondered if the poor devil had been
|
|
hammered on the Stock Exchange or run over by an omnibus.
|
|
|
|
"Isn't it dreadful? He's run away from his wife."
|
|
|
|
Miss Waterford certainly felt that she could not do her
|
|
subject justice on the curb of Jermyn Street, and so,
|
|
like an artist, flung the bare fact at me and declared that
|
|
she knew no details. I could not do her the injustice of supposing
|
|
that so trifling a circumstance would have prevented her from
|
|
giving them, but she was obstinate.
|
|
|
|
"I tell you I know nothing," she said, in reply to my agitated
|
|
questions, and then, with an airy shrug of the shoulders:
|
|
"I believe that a young person in a city tea-shop has left
|
|
her situation."
|
|
|
|
She flashed a smile at me, and, protesting an engagement with
|
|
her dentist, jauntily walked on. I was more interested than
|
|
distressed. In those days my experience of life at first hand
|
|
was small, and it excited me to come upon an incident among
|
|
people I knew of the same sort as I had read in books.
|
|
I confess that time has now accustomed me to incidents of this
|
|
character among my acquaintance. But I was a little shocked.
|
|
Strickland was certainly forty, and I thought it disgusting
|
|
that a man of his age should concern himself with affairs of
|
|
the heart. With the superciliousness of extreme youth, I put
|
|
thirty-five as the utmost limit at which a man might fall in
|
|
love without making a fool of himself. And this news was
|
|
slightly disconcerting to me personally, because I had written
|
|
from the country to Mrs. Strickland, announcing my return, and
|
|
had added that unless I heard from her to the contrary,
|
|
I would come on a certain day to drink a dish of tea with her.
|
|
This was the very day, and I had received no word from Mrs.
|
|
Strickland. Did she want to see me or did she not? It was
|
|
likely enough that in the agitation of the moment my note had
|
|
escaped her memory. Perhaps I should be wiser not to go.
|
|
On the other hand, she might wish to keep the affair quiet,
|
|
and it might be highly indiscreet on my part to give any sign that
|
|
this strange news had reached me. I was torn between the fear
|
|
of hurting a nice woman's feelings and the fear of being in
|
|
the way. I felt she must be suffering, and I did not want to
|
|
see a pain which I could not help; but in my heart was a
|
|
desire, that I felt a little ashamed of, to see how she was
|
|
taking it. I did not know what to do.
|
|
|
|
Finally it occurred to me that I would call as though nothing
|
|
had happened, and send a message in by the maid asking Mrs.
|
|
Strickland if it was convenient for her to see me. This would
|
|
give her the opportunity to send me away. But I was
|
|
overwhelmed with embarrassment when I said to the maid the
|
|
phrase I had prepared, and while I waited for the answer in a
|
|
dark passage I had to call up all my strength of mind not to bolt.
|
|
The maid came back. Her manner suggested to my excited
|
|
fancy a complete knowledge of the domestic calamity.
|
|
|
|
"Will you come this way, sir?" she said.
|
|
|
|
I followed her into the drawing-room. The blinds were partly
|
|
drawn to darken the room, and Mrs. Strickland was sitting with
|
|
her back to the light. Her brother-in-law, Colonel MacAndrew,
|
|
stood in front of the fireplace, warming his back at an unlit fire.
|
|
To myself my entrance seemed excessively awkward. I imagined
|
|
that my arrival had taken them by surprise, and Mrs. Strickland
|
|
had let me come in only because she had forgotten to put me off.
|
|
I fancied that the Colonel resented the interruption.
|
|
|
|
"I wasn't quite sure if you expected me," I said, trying to
|
|
seem unconcerned.
|
|
|
|
"Of course I did. Anne will bring the tea in a minute."
|
|
|
|
Even in the darkened room, I could not help seeing that Mrs.
|
|
Strickland's face was all swollen with tears. Her skin,
|
|
never very good, was earthy.
|
|
|
|
"You remember my brother-in-law, don't you? You met at dinner,
|
|
just before the holidays."
|
|
|
|
We shook hands. I felt so shy that I could think of nothing
|
|
to say, but Mrs. Strickland came to my rescue. She asked me
|
|
what I had been doing with myself during the summer, and with
|
|
this help I managed to make some conversation till tea was
|
|
brought in. The Colonel asked for a whisky-and-soda.
|
|
|
|
"You'd better have one too, Amy," he said.
|
|
|
|
"No; I prefer tea."
|
|
|
|
This was the first suggestion that anything untoward
|
|
had happened. I took no notice, and did my best to engage
|
|
Mrs. Strickland in talk. The Colonel, still standing in front
|
|
of the fireplace, uttered no word. I wondered how soon I could
|
|
decently take my leave, and I asked myself why on earth Mrs.
|
|
Strickland had allowed me to come. There were no flowers,
|
|
and various knick-knacks, put away during the summer, had not been
|
|
replaced; there was something cheerless and stiff about the
|
|
room which had always seemed so friendly; it gave you an odd
|
|
feeling, as though someone were lying dead on the other side
|
|
of the wall. I finished tea.
|
|
|
|
"Will you have a cigarette?" asked Mrs. Strickland.
|
|
|
|
She looked about for the box, but it was not to be seen.
|
|
|
|
"I'm afraid there are none."
|
|
|
|
Suddenly she burst into tears, and hurried from the room.
|
|
|
|
I was startled. I suppose now that the lack of cigarettes,
|
|
brought as a rule by her husband, forced him back upon her
|
|
recollection, and the new feeling that the small comforts she
|
|
was used to were missing gave her a sudden pang. She realised
|
|
that the old life was gone and done with. It was impossible
|
|
to keep up our social pretences any longer.
|
|
|
|
"I dare say you'd like me to go," I said to the Colonel,
|
|
getting up.
|
|
|
|
"I suppose you've heard that blackguard has deserted her,"
|
|
he cried explosively.
|
|
|
|
I hesitated.
|
|
|
|
"You know how people gossip," I answered. "I was vaguely told
|
|
that something was wrong."
|
|
|
|
"He's bolted. He's gone off to Paris with a woman. He's left
|
|
Amy without a penny."
|
|
|
|
"I'm awfully sorry," I said, not knowing what else to say.
|
|
|
|
The Colonel gulped down his whisky. He was a tall, lean man
|
|
of fifty, with a drooping moustache and grey hair. He had
|
|
pale blue eyes and a weak mouth. I remembered from my
|
|
previous meeting with him that he had a foolish face, and was
|
|
proud of the fact that for the ten years before he left the
|
|
army he had played polo three days a week.
|
|
|
|
"I don't suppose Mrs. Strickland wants to be bothered with me
|
|
just now," I said. "Will you tell her how sorry I am?
|
|
If there's anything I can do. I shall be delighted to do it."
|
|
|
|
He took no notice of me.
|
|
|
|
"I don't know what's to become of her. And then there are the
|
|
children. Are they going to live on air? Seventeen years."
|
|
|
|
"What about seventeen years?"
|
|
|
|
"They've been married," he snapped. "I never liked him.
|
|
Of course he was my brother-in-law, and I made the best of it.
|
|
Did you think him a gentleman? She ought never to have
|
|
married him."
|
|
|
|
"Is it absolutely final?"
|
|
|
|
"There's only one thing for her to do, and that's to divorce
|
|
him. That's what I was telling her when you came in.
|
|
'Fire in with your petition, my dear Amy,' I said. `You owe it
|
|
to yourself and you owe it to the children.' He'd better not let
|
|
me catch sight of him. I'd thrash him within an inch of his life."
|
|
|
|
I could not help thinking that Colonel MacAndrew might have
|
|
some difficulty in doing this, since Strickland had struck me
|
|
as a hefty fellow, but I did not say anything. It is always
|
|
distressing when outraged morality does not possess the
|
|
strength of arm to administer direct chastisement on the sinner.
|
|
I was making up my mind to another attempt at going
|
|
when Mrs. Strickland came back. She had dried her eyes and
|
|
powdered her nose.
|
|
|
|
"I'm sorry I broke down," she said. "I'm glad you didn't go away."
|
|
|
|
She sat down. I did not at all know what to say. I felt a
|
|
certain shyness at referring to matters which were no concern
|
|
of mine. I did not then know the besetting sin of woman,
|
|
the passion to discuss her private affairs with anyone who is
|
|
willing to listen. Mrs. Strickland seemed to make an effort
|
|
over herself.
|
|
|
|
"Are people talking about it?" she asked.
|
|
|
|
I was taken aback by her assumption that I knew all about her
|
|
domestic misfortune.
|
|
|
|
"I've only just come back. The only person I've seen is Rose
|
|
Waterford."
|
|
|
|
Mrs. Strickland clasped her hands.
|
|
|
|
"Tell me exactly what she said." And when I hesitated,
|
|
she insisted. "I particularly want to know."
|
|
|
|
"You know the way people talk. She's not very reliable, is
|
|
she? She said your husband had left you."
|
|
|
|
"Is that all?"
|
|
|
|
I did not choose to repeat Rose Waterford's parting reference
|
|
to a girl from a tea-shop. I lied.
|
|
|
|
"She didn't say anything about his going with anyone?"
|
|
|
|
"No."
|
|
|
|
"That's all I wanted to know."
|
|
|
|
I was a little puzzled, but at all events I understood that I
|
|
might now take my leave. When I shook hands with Mrs.
|
|
Strickland I told her that if I could be of any use to her I
|
|
should be very glad. She smiled wanly.
|
|
|
|
"Thank you so much. I don't know that anybody can do anything
|
|
for me."
|
|
|
|
Too shy to express my sympathy, I turned to say good-bye to
|
|
the Colonel. He did not take my hand.
|
|
|
|
"I'm just coming. If you're walking up Victoria Street,
|
|
I'll come along with you."
|
|
|
|
"All right," I said. "Come on."
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter IX
|
|
|
|
|
|
"This is a terrible thing," he said, the moment we got out
|
|
into the street.
|
|
|
|
I realised that he had come away with me in order to discuss
|
|
once more what he had been already discussing for hours with
|
|
his sister-in-law.
|
|
|
|
"We don't know who the woman is, you know," he said. "All we
|
|
know is that the blackguard's gone to Paris."
|
|
|
|
"I thought they got on so well."
|
|
|
|
"So they did. Why, just before you came in Amy said they'd
|
|
never had a quarrel in the whole of their married life.
|
|
You know Amy. There never was a better woman in the world."
|
|
|
|
Since these confidences were thrust on me, I saw no harm in
|
|
asking a few questions.
|
|
|
|
"But do you mean to say she suspected nothing?"
|
|
|
|
"Nothing. He spent August with her and the children in Norfolk.
|
|
He was just the same as he'd always been. We went
|
|
down for two or three days, my wife and I, and I played golf
|
|
with him. He came back to town in September to let his
|
|
partner go away, and Amy stayed on in the country.
|
|
They'd taken a house for six weeks, and at the end of her tenancy
|
|
she wrote to tell him on which day she was arriving in London.
|
|
He answered from Paris. He said he'd made up his mind not to
|
|
live with her any more."
|
|
|
|
"What explanation did he give?"
|
|
|
|
"My dear fellow, he gave no explanation. I've seen the
|
|
letter. It wasn't more than ten lines."
|
|
|
|
"But that's extraordinary."
|
|
|
|
We happened then to cross the street, and the traffic
|
|
prevented us from speaking. What Colonel MacAndrew had told
|
|
me seemed very improbable, and I suspected that Mrs.
|
|
Strickland, for reasons of her own, had concealed from him
|
|
some part of the facts. It was clear that a man after
|
|
seventeen years of wedlock did not leave his wife without
|
|
certain occurrences which must have led her to suspect that
|
|
all was not well with their married life. The Colonel caught me up.
|
|
|
|
"Of course, there was no explanation he could give except that
|
|
he'd gone off with a woman. I suppose he thought she could
|
|
find that out for herself. That's the sort of chap he was."
|
|
|
|
"What is Mrs. Strickland going to do?"
|
|
|
|
"Well, the first thing is to get our proofs. I'm going over
|
|
to Paris myself."
|
|
|
|
"And what about his business?"
|
|
|
|
"That's where he's been so artful. He's been drawing in his
|
|
horns for the last year."
|
|
|
|
"Did he tell his partner he was leaving?"
|
|
|
|
"Not a word."
|
|
|
|
Colonel MacAndrew had a very sketchy knowledge of business
|
|
matters, and I had none at all, so I did not quite understand
|
|
under what conditions Strickland had left his affairs.
|
|
I gathered that the deserted partner was very angry and
|
|
threatened proceedings. It appeared that when everything was
|
|
settled he would be four or five hundred pounds out of pocket.
|
|
|
|
"It's lucky the furniture in the flat is in Amy's name.
|
|
She'll have that at all events."
|
|
|
|
"Did you mean it when you said she wouldn't have a bob?"
|
|
|
|
"Of course I did. She's got two or three hundred pounds and
|
|
the furniture."
|
|
|
|
"But how is she going to live?"
|
|
|
|
"God knows."
|
|
|
|
The affair seemed to grow more complicated, and the Colonel,
|
|
with his expletives and his indignation, confused rather than
|
|
informed me. I was glad that, catching sight of the clock at
|
|
the Army and Navy Stores, he remembered an engagement to play
|
|
cards at his club, and so left me to cut across St. James Park.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter X
|
|
|
|
|
|
A day or two later Mrs. Strickland sent me round a note asking
|
|
if I could go and see her that evening after dinner. I found
|
|
her alone. Her black dress, simple to austerity, suggested
|
|
her bereaved condition, and I was innocently astonished that
|
|
notwithstanding a real emotion she was able to dress the part
|
|
she had to play according to her notions of seemliness.
|
|
|
|
"You said that if I wanted you to do anything you wouldn't
|
|
mind doing it," she remarked.
|
|
|
|
"It was quite true."
|
|
|
|
"Will you go over to Paris and see Charlie?"
|
|
|
|
"I?"
|
|
|
|
I was taken aback. I reflected that I had only seen him once.
|
|
I did not know what she wanted me to do.
|
|
|
|
"Fred is set on going." Fred was Colonel MacAndrew. "But I'm
|
|
sure he's not the man to go. He'll only make things worse.
|
|
I don't know who else to ask."
|
|
|
|
Her voice trembled a little, and I felt a brute even to hesitate.
|
|
|
|
"But I've not spoken ten words to your husband. He doesn't
|
|
know me. He'll probably just tell me to go to the devil."
|
|
|
|
"That wouldn't hurt you," said Mrs. Strickland, smiling.
|
|
|
|
"What is it exactly you want me to do?"
|
|
|
|
She did not answer directly.
|
|
|
|
"I think it's rather an advantage that he doesn't know you.
|
|
You see, he never really liked Fred; he thought him a fool; he
|
|
didn't understand soldiers. Fred would fly into a passion,
|
|
and there'd be a quarrel, and things would be worse instead
|
|
of better. If you said you came on my behalf, he couldn't
|
|
refuse to listen to you."
|
|
|
|
"I haven't known you very long," I answered. "I don't see how
|
|
anyone can be expected to tackle a case like this unless he
|
|
knows all the details. I don't want to pry into what doesn't
|
|
concern me. Why don't you go and see him yourself?"
|
|
|
|
"You forget he isn't alone."
|
|
|
|
I held my tongue. I saw myself calling on Charles Strickland
|
|
and sending in my card; I saw him come into the room,
|
|
holding it between finger and thumb:
|
|
|
|
"To what do I owe this honour?"
|
|
|
|
"I've come to see you about your wife."
|
|
|
|
"Really. When you are a little older you will doubtless learn
|
|
the advantage of minding your own business. If you will be so
|
|
good as to turn your head slightly to the left, you will see
|
|
the door. I wish you good-afternoon."
|
|
|
|
I foresaw that it would be difficult to make my exit with
|
|
dignity, and I wished to goodness that I had not returned to
|
|
London till Mrs. Strickland had composed her difficulties.
|
|
I stole a glance at her. She was immersed in thought.
|
|
Presently she looked up at me, sighed deeply, and smiled.
|
|
|
|
"It was all so unexpected," she said. "We'd been married
|
|
seventeen years. I sever dreamed that Charlie was the sort of
|
|
man to get infatuated with anyone. We always got on very well
|
|
together. Of course, I had a great many interests that he
|
|
didn't share."
|
|
|
|
"Have you found out who" -- I did not quite know how to
|
|
express myself -- "who the person, who it is he's gone away
|
|
with?"
|
|
|
|
"No. No one seems to have an idea. It's so strange.
|
|
Generally when a man falls in love with someone people see
|
|
them about together, lunching or something, and her friends
|
|
always come and tell the wife. I had no warning -- nothing.
|
|
His letter came like a thunderbolt. I thought he was
|
|
perfectly happy."
|
|
|
|
She began to cry, poor thing, and I felt very sorry for her.
|
|
But in a little while she grew calmer.
|
|
|
|
"It's no good making a fool of myself," she said, drying
|
|
her eyes. "The only thing is to decide what is the best
|
|
thing to do."
|
|
|
|
She went on, talking somewhat at random, now of the recent
|
|
past, then of their first meeting and their marriage;
|
|
but presently I began to form a fairly coherent picture of
|
|
their lives; and it seemed to me that my surmises had not
|
|
been incorrect. Mrs. Strickland was the daughter of an
|
|
Indian civilian, who on his retirement had settled in the depths
|
|
of the country, but it was his habit every August to take his
|
|
family to Eastbourne for change of air; and it was here,
|
|
when she was twenty, that she met Charles Strickland.
|
|
He was twenty-three. They played together, walked on the front
|
|
together, listened together to the nigger minstrels; and she
|
|
had made up her mind to accept him a week before he proposed
|
|
to her. They lived in London, first in Hampstead, and then,
|
|
as he grew more prosperous, in town. Two children were born
|
|
to them.
|
|
|
|
"He always seemed very fond of them. Even if he was tired of me,
|
|
I wonder that he had the heart to leave them. It's all so
|
|
incredible. Even now I can hardly believe it's true."
|
|
|
|
At last she showed me the letter he had written.
|
|
I was curious to see it, but had not ventured to ask for it.
|
|
|
|
|
|
"MY DEAR AMY,
|
|
|
|
<i "I think you will find everything all right in the flat.
|
|
I have given Anne your instructions, and dinner will be ready
|
|
for you and the children when you come. I shall not be there
|
|
to meet you. I have made up my mind to live apart from you,
|
|
and I am going to Paris in the morning. I shall post this
|
|
letter on my arrival. I shall not come back. My decision is
|
|
irrevocable.
|
|
|
|
"Yours always,>
|
|
|
|
"CHARLES STRICKLAND."
|
|
|
|
|
|
"Not a word of explanation or regret. Don't you think it's inhuman?"
|
|
|
|
"It's a very strange letter under the circumstances," I replied.
|
|
|
|
"There's only one explanation, and that is that he's not himself.
|
|
I don't know who this woman is who's got hold of him,
|
|
but she's made him into another man. It's evidently been
|
|
going on a long time."
|
|
|
|
"What makes you think that?"
|
|
|
|
"Fred found that out. My husband said he went to the club
|
|
three or four nights a week to play bridge. Fred knows one of
|
|
the members, and said something about Charles being a great
|
|
bridge-player. The man was surprised. He said he'd never
|
|
even seen Charles in the card-room. It's quite clear now that
|
|
when I thought Charles was at his club he was with her."
|
|
|
|
I was silent for a moment. Then I thought of the children.
|
|
|
|
"It must have been difficult to explain to Robert," I said.
|
|
|
|
"Oh, I never said a word to either of them. You see, we only
|
|
came up to town the day before they had to go back to school.
|
|
I had the presence of mind to say that their father had been
|
|
called away on business."
|
|
|
|
It could not have been very easy to be bright and careless
|
|
with that sudden secret in her heart, nor to give her
|
|
attention to all the things that needed doing to get her
|
|
children comfortably packed off. Mrs. Strickland's voice
|
|
broke again.
|
|
|
|
"And what is to happen to them, poor darlings? How are we
|
|
going to live?"
|
|
|
|
She struggled for self-control, and I saw her hands clench and
|
|
unclench spasmodically. It was dreadfully painful.
|
|
|
|
"Of course I'll go over to Paris if you think I can do any good,
|
|
but you must tell me exactly what you want me to do."
|
|
|
|
"I want him to come back."
|
|
|
|
"I understood from Colonel MacAndrew that you'd made up your
|
|
mind to divorce him."
|
|
|
|
"I'll never divorce him," she answered with a sudden violence.
|
|
"Tell him that from me. He'll never be able to marry that woman.
|
|
I'm as obstinate as he is, and I'll never divorce him.
|
|
I have to think of my children."
|
|
|
|
I think she added this to explain her attitude to me, but I
|
|
thought it was due to a very natural jealousy rather than to
|
|
maternal solicitude.
|
|
|
|
"Are you in love with him still?"
|
|
|
|
"I don't know. I want him to come back. If he'll do that
|
|
we'll let bygones be bygones. After all, we've been married
|
|
for seventeen years. I'm a broadminded woman. I wouldn't
|
|
have minded what he did as long as I knew nothing about it.
|
|
He must know that his infatuation won't last. If he'll come
|
|
back now everything can be smoothed over, and no one will know
|
|
anything about it."
|
|
|
|
It chilled me a little that Mrs. Strickland should be
|
|
concerned with gossip, for I did not know then how great a
|
|
part is played in women's life by the opinion of others.
|
|
It throws a shadow of insincerity over their most deeply
|
|
felt emotions.
|
|
|
|
It was known where Strickland was staying. His partner, in a
|
|
violent letter, sent to his bank, had taunted him with hiding
|
|
his whereabouts: and Strickland, in a cynical and humourous
|
|
reply, had told his partner exactly where to find him. He was
|
|
apparently living in an Hotel.
|
|
|
|
"I've never heard of it," said Mrs. Strickland. "But Fred
|
|
knows it well. He says it's very expensive."
|
|
|
|
She flushed darkly. I imagined that she saw her husband
|
|
installed in a luxurious suite of rooms, dining at one smart
|
|
restaurant after another, and she pictured his days spent at
|
|
race-meetings and his evenings at the play.
|
|
|
|
"It can't go on at his age," she said. "After all, he's forty.
|
|
I could understand it in a young man, but I think it's
|
|
horrible in a man of his years, with children who are nearly
|
|
grown up. His health will never stand it."
|
|
|
|
Anger struggled in her breast with misery.
|
|
|
|
"Tell him that our home cries out for him. Everything is just
|
|
the same, and yet everything is different. I can't live
|
|
without him. I'd sooner kill myself. Talk to him about the past,
|
|
and all we've gone through together. What am I to say
|
|
to the children when they ask for him? His room is exactly as
|
|
it was when he left it. It's waiting for him. We're all
|
|
waiting for him."
|
|
|
|
Now she told me exactly what I should say. She gave me
|
|
elaborate answers to every possible observation of his.
|
|
|
|
"You will do everything you can for me?" she said pitifully.
|
|
"Tell him what a state I'm in."
|
|
|
|
I saw that she wished me to appeal to his sympathies by every
|
|
means in my power. She was weeping freely. I was
|
|
extraordinarily touched. I felt indignant at Strickland's
|
|
cold cruelty, and I promised to do all I could to bring him back.
|
|
I agreed to go over on the next day but one, and to
|
|
stay in Paris till I had achieved something. Then, as it was
|
|
growing late and we were both exhausted by so much emotion,
|
|
I left her.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter XI
|
|
|
|
|
|
During the journey I thought over my errand with misgiving.
|
|
Now that I was free from the spectacle of Mrs. Strickland's
|
|
distress I could consider the matter more calmly. I was
|
|
puzzled by the contradictions that I saw in her behaviour.
|
|
She was very unhappy, but to excite my sympathy she was able
|
|
to make a show of her unhappiness. It was evident that she
|
|
had been prepared to weep, for she had provided herself with a
|
|
sufficiency of handkerchiefs; I admired her forethought, but
|
|
in retrospect it made her tears perhaps less moving. I could
|
|
not decide whether she desired the return of her husband
|
|
because she loved him, or because she dreaded the tongue of
|
|
scandal; and I was perturbed by the suspicion that the anguish
|
|
of love contemned was alloyed in her broken heart with the
|
|
pangs, sordid to my young mind, of wounded vanity. I had not
|
|
yet learnt how contradictory is human nature; I did not know
|
|
how much pose there is in the sincere, how much baseness in
|
|
the noble, nor how much goodness in the reprobate.
|
|
|
|
But there was something of an adventure in my trip, and my
|
|
spirits rose as I approached Paris. I saw myself, too, from
|
|
the dramatic standpoint, and I was pleased with my role of the
|
|
trusted friend bringing back the errant husband to his
|
|
forgiving wife. I made up my mind to see Strickland the
|
|
following evening, for I felt instinctively that the hour must
|
|
be chosen with delicacy. An appeal to the emotions is little
|
|
likely to be effectual before luncheon. My own thoughts were
|
|
then constantly occupied with love, but I never could imagine
|
|
connubial bliss till after tea.
|
|
|
|
I enquired at my hotel for that in which Charles Strickland
|
|
was living. It was called the Hotel des Belges. But the
|
|
concierge, somewhat to my surprise, had never heard of it.
|
|
I had understood from Mrs. Strickland that it was a large and
|
|
sumptuous place at the back of the Rue de Rivoli. We looked
|
|
it out in the directory. The only hotel of that name was in
|
|
the Rue des Moines. The quarter was not fashionable; it was
|
|
not even respectable. I shook my head.
|
|
|
|
"I'm sure that's not it," I said.
|
|
|
|
The concierge shrugged his shoulders. There was no other
|
|
hotel of that name in Paris. It occurred to me that
|
|
Strickland had concealed his address, after all. In giving
|
|
his partner the one I knew he was perhaps playing a trick on him.
|
|
I do not know why I had an inkling that it would appeal
|
|
to Strickland's sense of humour to bring a furious stockbroker
|
|
over to Paris on a fool's errand to an ill-famed house in a
|
|
mean street. Still, I thought I had better go and see.
|
|
Next day about six o'clock I took a cab to the Rue des Moines,
|
|
but dismissed it at the corner, since I preferred to walk to the
|
|
hotel and look at it before I went in. It was a street of
|
|
small shops subservient to the needs of poor people, and about
|
|
the middle of it, on the left as I walked down, was the Hotel
|
|
des Belges. My own hotel was modest enough, but it was
|
|
magnificent in comparison with this. It was a tall, shabby
|
|
building, that cannot have been painted for years, and it had
|
|
so bedraggled an air that the houses on each side of it looked
|
|
neat and clean. The dirty windows were all shut. It was not
|
|
here that Charles Strickland lived in guilty splendour with
|
|
the unknown charmer for whose sake he had abandoned honour and duty.
|
|
I was vexed, for I felt that I had been made a fool of,
|
|
and I nearly turned away without making an enquiry. I went in
|
|
only to be able to tell Mrs. Strickland that I had done my best.
|
|
|
|
The door was at the side of a shop. It stood open, and just
|
|
within was a sign: <i Bureau au premier.> I walked up narrow
|
|
stairs, and on the landing found a sort of box, glassed in,
|
|
within which were a desk and a couple of chairs. There was a
|
|
bench outside, on which it might be presumed the night porter
|
|
passed uneasy nights. There was no one about, but under an
|
|
electric bell was written <i Garcon.> I rang, and presently a
|
|
waiter appeared. He was a young man with furtive eyes and a
|
|
sullen look. He was in shirt-sleeves and carpet slippers.
|
|
|
|
I do not know why I made my enquiry as casual as possible.
|
|
|
|
"Does Mr. Strickland live here by any chance?" I asked.
|
|
|
|
"Number thirty-two. On the sixth floor."
|
|
|
|
I was so surprised that for a moment I did not answer.
|
|
|
|
"Is he in?"
|
|
|
|
The waiter looked at a board in the <i bureau.>
|
|
|
|
"He hasn't left his key. Go up and you'll see."
|
|
|
|
I thought it as well to put one more question.
|
|
|
|
<i "Madame est la?">
|
|
|
|
<i "Monsieur est seul.">
|
|
|
|
The waiter looked at me suspiciously as I made my way upstairs.
|
|
They were dark and airless. There was a foul and
|
|
musty smell. Three flights up a Woman in a dressing-gown,
|
|
with touzled hair, opened a door and looked at me silently as
|
|
I passed. At length I reached the sixth floor, and knocked at
|
|
the door numbered thirty-two. There was a sound within, and
|
|
the door was partly opened. Charles Strickland stood before me.
|
|
He uttered not a word. He evidently did not know me.
|
|
|
|
I told him my name. I tried my best to assume an airy manner.
|
|
|
|
"You don't remember me. I had the pleasure of dining with you
|
|
last July."
|
|
|
|
"Come in," he said cheerily. "I'm delighted to see you.
|
|
Take a pew."
|
|
|
|
I entered. It was a very small room, overcrowded with
|
|
furniture of the style which the French know as Louis
|
|
Philippe. There was a large wooden bedstead on which was a
|
|
billowing red eiderdown, and there was a large wardrobe,
|
|
a round table, a very small washstand, and two stuffed chairs
|
|
covered with red rep. Everything was dirty and shabby.
|
|
There was no sign of the abandoned luxury that Colonel MacAndrew
|
|
had so confidently described. Strickland threw on the floor the
|
|
clothes that burdened one of the chairs, and I sat down on it.
|
|
|
|
"What can I do for you?" he asked.
|
|
|
|
In that small room he seemed even bigger than I remembered him.
|
|
He wore an old Norfolk jacket, and he had not shaved for
|
|
several days. When last I saw him he was spruce enough,
|
|
but he looked ill at ease: now, untidy and ill-kempt,
|
|
he looked perfectly at home. I did not know how he would
|
|
take the remark I had prepared.
|
|
|
|
"I've come to see you on behalf of your wife."
|
|
|
|
"I was just going out to have a drink before dinner.
|
|
You'd better come too. Do you like absinthe?"
|
|
|
|
"I can drink it."
|
|
|
|
"Come on, then."
|
|
|
|
He put on a bowler hat much in need of brushing.
|
|
|
|
"We might dine together. You owe me a dinner, you know."
|
|
|
|
"Certainly. Are you alone?"
|
|
|
|
I flattered myself that I had got in that important question
|
|
very naturally.
|
|
|
|
"Oh yes. In point of fact I've not spoken to a soul for three days.
|
|
My French isn't exactly brilliant."
|
|
|
|
I wondered as I preceded him downstairs what had happened to
|
|
the little lady in the tea-shop. Had they quarrelled already,
|
|
or was his infatuation passed? It seemed hardly likely if,
|
|
as appeared, he had been taking steps for a year to make his
|
|
desperate plunge. We walked to the Avenue de Clichy, and sat
|
|
down at one of the tables on the pavement of a large cafe.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter XII
|
|
|
|
|
|
The Avenue de Clichy was crowded at that hour, and a lively
|
|
fancy might see in the passers-by the personages of many a
|
|
sordid romance. There were clerks and shopgirls; old fellows
|
|
who might have stepped out of the pages of Honore de Balzac;
|
|
members, male and female, of the professions which make their
|
|
profit of the frailties of mankind. There is in the streets
|
|
of the poorer quarters of Paris a thronging vitality which
|
|
excites the blood and prepares the soul for the unexpected.
|
|
|
|
"Do you know Paris well?" I asked.
|
|
|
|
"No. We came on our honeymoon. I haven't been since."
|
|
|
|
"How on earth did you find out your hotel?"
|
|
|
|
"It was recommended to me. I wanted something cheap."
|
|
|
|
The absinthe came, and with due solemnity we dropped water
|
|
over the melting sugar.
|
|
|
|
"I thought I'd better tell you at once why I had come to see you,"
|
|
I said, not without embarrassment.
|
|
|
|
His eyes twinkled. "I thought somebody would come along
|
|
sooner or later. I've had a lot of letters from Amy."
|
|
|
|
"Then you know pretty well what I've got to say."
|
|
|
|
"I've not read them."
|
|
|
|
I lit a cigarette to give myself a moment's time. I did not
|
|
quite know now how to set about my mission. The eloquent
|
|
phrases I had arranged, pathetic or indignant, seemed out of
|
|
place on the Avenue de Clichy. Suddenly he gave a chuckle.
|
|
|
|
"Beastly job for you this, isn't it?"
|
|
|
|
"Oh, I don't know," I answered.
|
|
|
|
"Well, look here, you get it over, and then we'll have a
|
|
jolly evening."
|
|
|
|
I hesitated.
|
|
|
|
"Has it occurred to you that your wife is frightfully unhappy?"
|
|
|
|
"She'll get over it."
|
|
|
|
I cannot describe the extraordinary callousness with which he
|
|
made this reply. It disconcerted me, but I did my best not to
|
|
show it. I adopted the tone used by my Uncle Henry,
|
|
a clergyman, when he was asking one of his relatives for a
|
|
subscription to the Additional Curates Society.
|
|
|
|
"You don't mind my talking to you frankly?"
|
|
|
|
He shook his head, smiling.
|
|
|
|
"Has she deserved that you should treat her like this?"
|
|
|
|
"No."
|
|
|
|
"Have you any complaint to make against her?"
|
|
|
|
"None."
|
|
|
|
"Then, isn't it monstrous to leave her in this fashion,
|
|
after seventeen years of married life, without a fault
|
|
to find with her?"
|
|
|
|
"Monstrous."
|
|
|
|
I glanced at him with surprise. His cordial agreement with
|
|
all I said cut the ground from under my feet. It made my
|
|
position complicated, not to say ludicrous. I was prepared to
|
|
be persuasive, touching, and hortatory, admonitory and
|
|
expostulating, if need be vituperative even, indignant and
|
|
sarcastic; but what the devil does a mentor do when the sinner
|
|
makes no bones about confessing his sin? I had no experience,
|
|
since my own practice has always been to deny everything.
|
|
|
|
"What, then?" asked Strickland.
|
|
|
|
I tried to curl my lip.
|
|
|
|
"Well, if you acknowledge that, there doesn't seem much more
|
|
to be said."
|
|
|
|
"I don't think there is."
|
|
|
|
I felt that I was not carrying out my embassy with any great skill.
|
|
I was distinctly nettled.
|
|
|
|
"Hang it all, one can't leave a woman without a bob."
|
|
|
|
"Why not?"
|
|
|
|
"How is she going to live?"
|
|
|
|
"I've supported her for seventeen years. Why shouldn't she
|
|
support herself for a change?"
|
|
|
|
"She can't."
|
|
|
|
"Let her try."
|
|
|
|
Of course there were many things I might have answered to this.
|
|
I might have spoken of the economic position of woman,
|
|
of the contract, tacit and overt, which a man accepts by his
|
|
marriage, and of much else; but I felt that there was only one
|
|
point which really signified.
|
|
|
|
"Don't you care for her any more?"
|
|
|
|
"Not a bit," he replied.
|
|
|
|
The matter was immensely serious for all the parties concerned,
|
|
but there was in the manner of his answer such a cheerful
|
|
effrontery that I had to bite my lips in order not to laugh.
|
|
I reminded myself that his behaviour was abominable.
|
|
I worked myself up into a state of moral indignation.
|
|
|
|
"Damn it all, there are your children to think of.
|
|
They've never done you any harm. They didn't ask to be
|
|
brought into the world. If you chuck everything like this,
|
|
they'll be thrown on the streets.
|
|
|
|
"They've had a good many years of comfort. It's much more
|
|
than the majority of children have. Besides, somebody will
|
|
look after them. When it comes to the point, the MacAndrews
|
|
will pay for their schooling."
|
|
|
|
"But aren't you fond of them? They're such awfully nice kids.
|
|
Do you mean to say you don't want to have anything more to do
|
|
with them?"
|
|
|
|
"I liked them all right when they were kids, but now they're
|
|
growing up I haven't got any particular feeling for them."
|
|
|
|
"It's just inhuman."
|
|
|
|
"I dare say."
|
|
|
|
"You don't seem in the least ashamed."
|
|
|
|
"I'm not."
|
|
|
|
I tried another tack.
|
|
|
|
"Everyone will think you a perfect swine."
|
|
|
|
"Let them."
|
|
|
|
"Won't it mean anything to you to know that people loathe and
|
|
despise you?"
|
|
|
|
"No."
|
|
|
|
His brief answer was so scornful that it made my question,
|
|
natural though it was, seem absurd. I reflected for a minute
|
|
or two.
|
|
|
|
"I wonder if one can live quite comfortably when one's
|
|
conscious of the disapproval of one's fellows? Are you sure
|
|
it won't begin to worry you? Everyone has some sort of a
|
|
conscience, and sooner or later it will find you out.
|
|
Supposing your wife died, wouldn't you be tortured by remorse?"
|
|
|
|
He did not answer, and I waited for some time for him to
|
|
speak. At last I had to break the silence myself.
|
|
|
|
"What have you to say to that?"
|
|
|
|
"Only that you're a damned fool."
|
|
|
|
"At all events, you can be forced to support your wife and
|
|
children," I retorted, somewhat piqued. "I suppose the law
|
|
has some protection to offer them."
|
|
|
|
"Can the law get blood out of a stone? I haven't any money.
|
|
I've got about a hundred pounds."
|
|
|
|
I began to be more puzzled than before. It was true that his
|
|
hotel pointed to the most straitened circumstances.
|
|
|
|
"What are you going to do when you've spent that?"
|
|
|
|
"Earn some."
|
|
|
|
He was perfectly cool, and his eyes kept that mocking smile
|
|
which made all I said seem rather foolish. I paused for a
|
|
little while to consider what I had better say next. But it
|
|
was he who spoke first.
|
|
|
|
"Why doesn't Amy marry again? She's comparatively young, and
|
|
she's not unattractive. I can recommend her as an excellent wife.
|
|
If she wants to divorce me I don't mind giving her the
|
|
necessary grounds."
|
|
|
|
Now it was my turn to smile. He was very cunning, but it was
|
|
evidently this that he was aiming at. He had some reason to
|
|
conceal the fact that he had run away with a woman, and he was
|
|
using every precaution to hide her whereabouts. I answered
|
|
with decision.
|
|
|
|
"Your wife says that nothing you can do will ever induce her
|
|
to divorce you. She's quite made up her mind. You can put
|
|
any possibility of that definitely out of your head."
|
|
|
|
He looked at me with an astonishment that was certainly not
|
|
feigned. The smile abandoned his lips, and he spoke quite seriously.
|
|
|
|
"But, my dear fellow, I don't care. It doesn't matter a
|
|
twopenny damn to me one way or the other."
|
|
|
|
I laughed.
|
|
|
|
"Oh, come now; you mustn't think us such fools as all that.
|
|
We happen to know that you came away with a woman."
|
|
|
|
He gave a little start, and then suddenly burst into a shout
|
|
of laughter. He laughed so uproariously that people sitting
|
|
near us looked round, and some of them began to laugh too.
|
|
|
|
"I don't see anything very amusing in that."
|
|
|
|
"Poor Amy," he grinned.
|
|
|
|
Then his face grew bitterly scornful.
|
|
|
|
"What poor minds women have got! Love. It's always love.
|
|
They think a man leaves only because he wants others.
|
|
Do you think I should be such a fool as to do what I've
|
|
done for a woman?"
|
|
|
|
"Do you mean to say you didn't leave your wife for another woman?"
|
|
|
|
"Of course not."
|
|
|
|
"On your word of honour?"
|
|
|
|
I don't know why I asked for that. It was very ingenuous of me.
|
|
|
|
"On my word of honour."
|
|
|
|
"Then, what in God's name have you left her for?"
|
|
|
|
"I want to paint."
|
|
|
|
I looked at him for quite a long time. I did not understand.
|
|
I thought he was mad. It must be remembered that I was very
|
|
young, and I looked upon him as a middle-aged man. I forgot
|
|
everything but my own amazement.
|
|
|
|
"But you're forty."
|
|
|
|
"That's what made me think it was high time to begin."
|
|
|
|
"Have you ever painted?"
|
|
|
|
"I rather wanted to be a painter when I was a boy, but my
|
|
father made me go into business because he said there was no
|
|
money in art. I began to paint a bit a year ago. For the
|
|
last year I've been going to some classes at night."
|
|
|
|
"Was that where you went when Mrs. Strickland thought you were
|
|
playing bridge at your club?"
|
|
|
|
"That's it."
|
|
|
|
"Why didn't you tell her?"
|
|
|
|
"I preferred to keep it to myself."
|
|
|
|
"Can you paint?"
|
|
|
|
"Not yet. But I shall. That's why I've come over here.
|
|
I couldn't get what I wanted in London. Perhaps I can here."
|
|
|
|
"Do you think it's likely that a man will do any good when he
|
|
starts at your age? Most men begin painting at eighteen."
|
|
|
|
"I can learn quicker than I could when I was eighteen."
|
|
|
|
"What makes you think you have any talent?"
|
|
|
|
He did not answer for a minute. His gaze rested on the
|
|
passing throng, but I do not think he saw it. His answer was
|
|
no answer.
|
|
|
|
"I've got to paint."
|
|
|
|
"Aren't you taking an awful chance?"
|
|
|
|
He looked at me. His eyes had something strange in them,
|
|
so that I felt rather uncomfortable.
|
|
|
|
"How old are you? Twenty-three?"
|
|
|
|
It seemed to me that the question was beside the point.
|
|
It was natural that I should take chances; but he was a man whose
|
|
youth was past, a stockbroker with a position of
|
|
respectability, a wife and two children. A course that would
|
|
have been natural for me was absurd for him. I wished to be
|
|
quite fair.
|
|
|
|
"Of course a miracle may happen, and you may be a great painter,
|
|
but you must confess the chances are a million to one
|
|
against it. It'll be an awful sell if at the end you have to
|
|
acknowledge you've made a hash of it."
|
|
|
|
"I've got to paint," he repeated.
|
|
|
|
"Supposing you're never anything more than third-rate, do you
|
|
think it will have been worth while to give up everything?
|
|
After all, in any other walk in life it doesn't matter if
|
|
you're not very good; you can get along quite comfortably if
|
|
you're just adequate; but it's different with an artist."
|
|
|
|
"You blasted fool," he said.
|
|
|
|
"I don't see why, unless it's folly to say the obvious."
|
|
|
|
"I tell you I've got to paint. I can't help myself. When a
|
|
man falls into the water it doesn't matter how he swims,
|
|
well or badly: he's got to get out or else he'll drown."
|
|
|
|
There was real passion in his voice, and in spite of myself I
|
|
was impressed. I seemed to feel in him some vehement power
|
|
that was struggling within him; it gave me the sensation of
|
|
something very strong, overmastering, that held him, as it were,
|
|
against his will. I could not understand. He seemed
|
|
really to be possessed of a devil, and I felt that it might
|
|
suddenly turn and rend him. Yet he looked ordinary enough.
|
|
My eyes, resting on him curiously, caused him no
|
|
embarrassment. I wondered what a stranger would have taken
|
|
him to be, sitting there in his old Norfolk jacket and his
|
|
unbrushed bowler; his trousers were baggy, his hands were not
|
|
clean; and his face, with the red stubble of the unshaved
|
|
chin, the little eyes, and the large, aggressive nose,
|
|
was uncouth and coarse. His mouth was large, his lips were heavy
|
|
and sensual. No; I could not have placed him.
|
|
|
|
"You won't go back to your wife?" I said at last.
|
|
|
|
"Never."
|
|
|
|
"She's willing to forget everything that's happened and start afresh.
|
|
She'll never make you a single reproach."
|
|
|
|
"She can go to hell."
|
|
|
|
"You don't care if people think you an utter blackguard?
|
|
You don't care if she and your children have to beg their bread?"
|
|
|
|
"Not a damn."
|
|
|
|
I was silent for a moment in order to give greater force to my
|
|
next remark. I spoke as deliberately as I could.
|
|
|
|
"You are a most unmitigated cad."
|
|
|
|
"Now that you've got that off your chest, let's go and have dinner."
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter XIII
|
|
|
|
|
|
I dare say it would have been more seemly to decline this proposal.
|
|
I think perhaps I should have made a show of the
|
|
indignation I really felt, and I am sure that Colonel
|
|
MacAndrew at least would have thought well of me if I had been
|
|
able to report my stout refusal to sit at the same table with
|
|
a man of such character. But the fear of not being able to
|
|
carry it through effectively has always made me shy of
|
|
assuming the moral attitude; and in this case the certainty
|
|
that my sentiments would be lost on Strickland made it
|
|
peculiarly embarrassing to utter them. Only the poet or the
|
|
saint can water an asphalt pavement in the confident
|
|
anticipation that lilies will reward his labour.
|
|
|
|
I paid for what we had drunk, and we made our way to a cheap
|
|
restaurant, crowded and gay, where we dined with pleasure.
|
|
I had the appetite of youth and he of a hardened conscience.
|
|
Then we went to a tavern to have coffee and liqueurs.
|
|
|
|
I had said all I had to say on the subject that had brought me
|
|
to Paris, and though I felt it in a manner treacherous to Mrs.
|
|
Strickland not to pursue it, I could not struggle against his
|
|
indifference. It requires the feminine temperament to repeat
|
|
the same thing three times with unabated zest. I solaced
|
|
myself by thinking that it would be useful for me to find out
|
|
what I could about Strickland's state of mind. It also
|
|
interested me much more. But this was not an easy thing to do,
|
|
for Strickland was not a fluent talker. He seemed to
|
|
express himself with difficulty, as though words were not the
|
|
medium with which his mind worked; and you had to guess the
|
|
intentions of his soul by hackneyed phrases, slang, and vague,
|
|
unfinished gestures. But though he said nothing of any
|
|
consequence, there was something in his personality which
|
|
prevented him from being dull. Perhaps it was sincerity.
|
|
He did not seem to care much about the Paris he was now seeing
|
|
for the first time (I did not count the visit with his wife),
|
|
and he accepted sights which must have been strange to him
|
|
without any sense of astonishment. I have been to Paris a
|
|
hundred times, and it never fails to give me a thrill of excitement;
|
|
I can never walk its streets without feeling myself
|
|
on the verge of adventure. Strickland remained placid.
|
|
Looking back, I think now that he was blind to everything but
|
|
to some disturbing vision in his soul.
|
|
|
|
One rather absurd incident took place. There were a number of
|
|
harlots in the tavern: some were sitting with men, others by
|
|
themselves; and presently I noticed that one of these was
|
|
looking at us. When she caught Strickland's eye she smiled.
|
|
I do not think he saw her. In a little while she went out,
|
|
but in a minute returned and, passing our table, very politely
|
|
asked us to buy her something to drink. She sat down and I
|
|
began to chat with her; but, it was plain that her interest
|
|
was in Strickland. I explained that he knew no more than two
|
|
words of French. She tried to talk to him, partly by signs,
|
|
partly in pidgin French, which, for some reason, she thought
|
|
would be more comprehensible to him, and she had half a dozen
|
|
phrases of English. She made me translate what she could only
|
|
express in her own tongue, and eagerly asked for the meaning
|
|
of his replies. He was quite good-tempered, a little amused,
|
|
but his indifference was obvious.
|
|
|
|
"I think you've made a conquest," I laughed.
|
|
|
|
"I'm not flattered."
|
|
|
|
In his place I should have been more embarrassed and less calm.
|
|
She had laughing eyes and a most charming mouth.
|
|
She was young. I wondered what she found so attractive in
|
|
Strickland. She made no secret of her desires, and I was
|
|
bidden to translate.
|
|
|
|
"She wants you to go home with her."
|
|
|
|
"I'm not taking any," he replied.
|
|
|
|
I put his answer as pleasantly as I could. It seemed to me a
|
|
little ungracious to decline an invitation of that sort,
|
|
and I ascribed his refusal to lack of money.
|
|
|
|
"But I like him," she said. "Tell him it's for love."
|
|
|
|
When I translated this, Strickland shrugged his shoulders impatiently.
|
|
|
|
"Tell her to go to hell," he said.
|
|
|
|
His manner made his answer quite plain, and the girl threw
|
|
back her head with a sudden gesture. Perhaps she reddened
|
|
under her paint. She rose to her feet.
|
|
|
|
<i "Monsieur n'est pas poli,"> she said.
|
|
|
|
She walked out of the inn. I was slightly vexed.
|
|
|
|
"There wasn't any need to insult her that I can see," I said.
|
|
"After all, it was rather a compliment she was paying you."
|
|
|
|
"That sort of thing makes me sick," he said roughly.
|
|
|
|
I looked at him curiously. There was a real distaste in his
|
|
face, and yet it was the face of a coarse and sensual man.
|
|
I suppose the girl had been attracted by a certain brutality in it.
|
|
|
|
I could have got all the women I wanted in London. I didn't
|
|
come here for that."
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter XIV
|
|
|
|
|
|
During the journey back to England I thought much of
|
|
Strickland. I tried to set in order what I had to tell his wife.
|
|
It was unsatisfactory, and I could not imagine that she
|
|
would be content with me; I was not content with myself.
|
|
Strickland perplexed me. I could not understand his motives.
|
|
When I had asked him what first gave him the idea of being a
|
|
painter, he was unable or unwilling to tell me. I could make
|
|
nothing of it. I tried to persuade myself than an obscure
|
|
feeling of revolt had been gradually coming to a head in his
|
|
slow mind, but to challenge this was the undoubted fact that
|
|
he had never shown any impatience with the monotony of his life.
|
|
If, seized by an intolerable boredom, he had determined
|
|
to be a painter merely to break with irksome ties, it would
|
|
have been comprehensible, and commonplace; but commonplace is
|
|
precisely what I felt he was not. At last, because I was
|
|
romantic, I devised an explanation which I acknowledged to be
|
|
far-fetched, but which was the only one that in any way
|
|
satisfied me. It was this: I asked myself whether there was
|
|
not in his soul some deep-rooted instinct of creation, which
|
|
the circumstances of his life had obscured, but which grew
|
|
relentlessly, as a cancer may grow in the living tissues,
|
|
till at last it took possession of his whole being and forced
|
|
him irresistibly to action. The cuckoo lays its egg in the
|
|
strange bird's nest, and when the young one is hatched it
|
|
shoulders its foster-brothers out and breaks at last the nest
|
|
that has sheltered it.
|
|
|
|
But how strange it was that the creative instinct should seize
|
|
upon this dull stockbroker, to his own ruin, perhaps, and to
|
|
the misfortune of such as were dependent on him; and yet no
|
|
stranger than the way in which the spirit of God has seized men,
|
|
powerful and rich, pursuing them with stubborn vigilance
|
|
till at last, conquered, they have abandoned the joy of the
|
|
world and the love of women for the painful austerities of
|
|
the cloister. Conversion may come under many shapes, and it may
|
|
be brought about in many ways. With some men it needs a
|
|
cataclysm, as a stone may be broken to fragments by the fury
|
|
of a torrent; but with some it comes gradually, as a stone may
|
|
be worn away by the ceaseless fall of a drop of water.
|
|
Strickland had the directness of the fanatic and the ferocity
|
|
of the apostle.
|
|
|
|
But to my practical mind it remained to be seen whether the
|
|
passion which obsessed him would be justified of its works.
|
|
When I asked him what his brother-students at the night
|
|
classes he had attended in London thought of his painting,
|
|
he answered with a grin:
|
|
|
|
"They thought it a joke."
|
|
|
|
"Have you begun to go to a studio here?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes. The blighter came round this morning -- the master,
|
|
you know; when he saw my drawing he just raised his eyebrows
|
|
and walked on."
|
|
|
|
Strickland chuckled. He did not seem discouraged.
|
|
He was independent of the opinion of his fellows.
|
|
|
|
And it was just that which had most disconcerted me in my
|
|
dealings with him. When people say they do not care what
|
|
others think of them, for the most part they deceive themselves.
|
|
Generally they mean only that they will do as
|
|
they choose, in the confidence that no one will know their
|
|
vagaries; and at the utmost only that they are willing to act
|
|
contrary to the opinion of the majority because they are
|
|
supported by the approval of their neighbours. It is not
|
|
difficult to be unconventional in the eyes of the world when
|
|
your unconventionality is but the convention of your set.
|
|
It affords you then an inordinate amount of self-esteem.
|
|
You have the self-satisfaction of courage without the
|
|
inconvenience of danger. But the desire for approbation is
|
|
perhaps the most deeply seated instinct of civilised man.
|
|
No one runs so hurriedly to the cover of respectability as the
|
|
unconventional woman who has exposed herself to the slings and
|
|
arrows of outraged propriety. I do not believe the people who
|
|
tell me they do not care a row of pins for the opinion of
|
|
their fellows. It is the bravado of ignorance. They mean
|
|
only that they do not fear reproaches for peccadillos which
|
|
they are convinced none will discover.
|
|
|
|
But here was a man who sincerely did not mind what people
|
|
thought of him, and so convention had no hold on him; he was
|
|
like a wrestler whose body is oiled; you could not get a grip
|
|
on him; it gave him a freedom which was an outrage.
|
|
I remember saying to him:
|
|
|
|
"Look here, if everyone acted like you, the world couldn't go on."
|
|
|
|
"That's a damned silly thing to say. Everyone doesn't want to
|
|
act like me. The great majority are perfectly content to do
|
|
the ordinary thing."
|
|
|
|
And once I sought to be satirical.
|
|
|
|
"You evidently don't believe in the maxim: Act so that every
|
|
one of your actions is capable of being made into a universal rule."
|
|
|
|
"I never heard it before, but it's rotten nonsense."
|
|
|
|
"Well, it was Kant who said it."
|
|
|
|
"I don't care; it's rotten nonsense."
|
|
|
|
Nor with such a man could you expect the appeal to conscience
|
|
to be effective. You might as well ask for a rejection
|
|
without a mirror. I take it that conscience is the guardian
|
|
in the individual of the rules which the community has evolved
|
|
for its own preservation. It is the policeman in all our
|
|
hearts, set there to watch that we do not break its laws.
|
|
It is the spy seated in the central stronghold of the ego.
|
|
Man's desire for the approval of his fellows is so strong, his dread
|
|
of their censure so violent, that he himself has brought his
|
|
enemy within his gates; and it keeps watch over him, vigilant
|
|
always in the interests of its master to crush any half-formed
|
|
desire to break away from the herd. It will force him to
|
|
place the good of society before his own. It is the very
|
|
strong link that attaches the individual to the whole.
|
|
And man, subservient to interests he has persuaded himself are
|
|
greater than his own, makes himself a slave to his taskmaster.
|
|
He sits him in a seat of honour. At last, like a courtier
|
|
fawning on the royal stick that is laid about his shoulders,
|
|
he prides himself on the sensitiveness of his conscience.
|
|
Then he has no words hard enough for the man who does not
|
|
recognise its sway; for, a member of society now, he realises
|
|
accurately enough that against him he is powerless. When I
|
|
saw that Strickland was really indifferent to the blame his
|
|
conduct must excite, I could only draw back in horror as from
|
|
a monster of hardly human shape.
|
|
|
|
The last words he said to me when I bade him good-night were:
|
|
|
|
"Tell Amy it's no good coming after me. Anyhow, I shall
|
|
change my hotel, so she wouldn't be able to find me."
|
|
|
|
"My own impression is that she's well rid of you," I said.
|
|
|
|
"My dear fellow, I only hope you'll be able to make her see it.
|
|
But women are very unintelligent."
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter XV
|
|
|
|
|
|
When I reached London I found waiting for me an urgent request
|
|
that I should go to Mrs. Strickland's as soon after dinner as
|
|
I could. I found her with Colonel MacAndrew and his wife.
|
|
Mrs. Strickland's sister was older than she, not unlike her,
|
|
but more faded; and she had the efficient air, as though she
|
|
carried the British Empire in her pocket, which the wives of
|
|
senior officers acquire from the consciousness of belonging to
|
|
a superior caste. Her manner was brisk, and her good-breeding
|
|
scarcely concealed her conviction that if you were not a
|
|
soldier you might as well be a counter-jumper. She hated the
|
|
Guards, whom she thought conceited, and she could not trust
|
|
herself to speak of their ladies, who were so remiss in calling.
|
|
Her gown was dowdy and expensive.
|
|
|
|
Mrs. Strickland was plainly nervous.
|
|
|
|
"Well, tell us your news," she said.
|
|
|
|
"I saw your husband. I'm afraid he's quite made up his mind
|
|
not to return." I paused a little. "He wants to paint."
|
|
|
|
"What do you mean?" cried Mrs. Strickland, with the utmost
|
|
astonishment.
|
|
|
|
"Did you never know that he was keen on that sort of thing."
|
|
|
|
"He must be as mad as a hatter," exclaimed the Colonel.
|
|
|
|
Mrs. Strickland frowned a little. She was searching among her
|
|
recollections.
|
|
|
|
"I remember before we were married he used to potter about
|
|
with a paint-box. But you never saw such daubs. We used to
|
|
chaff him. He had absolutely no gift for anything like that."
|
|
|
|
"Of course it's only an excuse," said Mrs. MacAndrew.
|
|
|
|
Mrs. Strickland pondered deeply for some time. It was quite
|
|
clear that she could not make head or tail of my announcement.
|
|
She had put some order into the drawing-room by now,
|
|
her housewifely instincts having got the better of her dismay;
|
|
and it no longer bore that deserted look, like a furnished house
|
|
long to let, which I had noticed on my first visit after the
|
|
catastrophe. But now that I had seen Strickland in Paris it
|
|
was difficult to imagine him in those surroundings. I thought
|
|
it could hardly have failed to strike them that there was
|
|
something incongruous in him.
|
|
|
|
"But if he wanted to be an artist, why didn't he say so?"
|
|
asked Mrs. Strickland at last. "I should have thought I was
|
|
the last person to be unsympathetic to -- to aspirations of
|
|
that kind."
|
|
|
|
Mrs. MacAndrew tightened her lips. I imagine that she had
|
|
never looked with approval on her sister's leaning towards
|
|
persons who cultivated the arts. She spoke of "culchaw"
|
|
derisively.
|
|
|
|
Mrs. Strickland continued:
|
|
|
|
"After all, if he had any talent I should be the first to
|
|
encourage it. I wouldn't have minded sacrifices. I'd much
|
|
rather be married to a painter than to a stockbroker. If it
|
|
weren't for the children, I wouldn't mind anything. I could
|
|
be just as happy in a shabby studio in Chelsea as in this flat."
|
|
|
|
"My dear, I have no patience with you," cried Mrs. MacAndrew.
|
|
"You don't mean to say you believe a word of this nonsense?"
|
|
|
|
"But I think it's true," I put in mildly.
|
|
|
|
She looked at me with good-humoured contempt.
|
|
|
|
"A man doesn't throw up his business and leave his wife and
|
|
children at the age of forty to become a painter unless
|
|
there's a woman in it. I suppose he met one of your --
|
|
artistic friends, and she's turned his head."
|
|
|
|
A spot of colour rose suddenly to Mrs. Strickland's pale cheeks.
|
|
|
|
"What is she like?"
|
|
|
|
I hesitated a little. I knew that I had a bombshell.
|
|
|
|
"There isn't a woman."
|
|
|
|
Colonel MacAndrew and his wife uttered expressions of incredulity,
|
|
and Mrs. Strickland sprang to her feet.
|
|
|
|
"Do you mean to say you never saw her?"
|
|
|
|
"There's no one to see. He's quite alone."
|
|
|
|
"That's preposterous," cried Mrs. MacAndrew.
|
|
|
|
"I knew I ought to have gone over myself," said the Colonel.
|
|
"You can bet your boots I'd have routed her out fast enough."
|
|
|
|
"I wish you had gone over," I replied, somewhat tartly.
|
|
"You'd have seen that every one of your suppositions was wrong.
|
|
He's not at a smart hotel. He's living in one tiny
|
|
room in the most squalid way. If he's left his home, it's not
|
|
to live a gay life. He's got hardly any money."
|
|
|
|
"Do you think he's done something that we don't know about,
|
|
and is lying doggo on account of the police?"
|
|
|
|
The suggestion sent a ray of hope in all their breasts, but I
|
|
would have nothing to do with it.
|
|
|
|
"If that were so, he would hardly have been such a fool as to
|
|
give his partner his address," I retorted acidly.
|
|
"Anyhow, there's one thing I'm positive of, he didn't go
|
|
away with anyone. He's not in love. Nothing is farther
|
|
from his thoughts."
|
|
|
|
There was a pause while they reflected over my words.
|
|
|
|
"Well, if what you say is true," said Mrs. MacAndrew at last,
|
|
"things aren't so bad as I thought."
|
|
|
|
Mrs. Strickland glanced at her, but said nothing.
|
|
|
|
She was very pale now, and her fine brow was dark and lowering.
|
|
I could not understand the expression of her face.
|
|
Mrs. MacAndrew continued:
|
|
|
|
"If it's just a whim, he'll get over it."
|
|
|
|
"Why don't you go over to him, Amy?" hazarded the Colonel.
|
|
"There's no reason why you shouldn't live with him in Paris
|
|
for a year. We'll look after the children. I dare say he'd
|
|
got stale. Sooner or later he'll be quite ready to come back
|
|
to London, and no great harm will have been done."
|
|
|
|
"I wouldn't do that," said Mrs. MacAndrew. "I'd give him all
|
|
the rope he wants. He'll come back with his tail between his
|
|
legs and settle down again quite comfortably." Mrs. MacAndrew
|
|
looked at her sister coolly. "Perhaps you weren't very wise
|
|
with him sometimes. Men are queer creatures, and one has to
|
|
know how to manage them."
|
|
|
|
Mrs. MacAndrew shared the common opinion of her sex that a man
|
|
is always a brute to leave a woman who is attached to him, but
|
|
that a woman is much to blame if he does. <i Le coeur a ses
|
|
raisons que la raison ne connait pas.>
|
|
|
|
Mrs. Strickland looked slowly from one to another of us.
|
|
|
|
"He'll never come back," she said.
|
|
|
|
"Oh, my dear, remember what we've just heard. He's been used
|
|
to comfort and to having someone to look after him. How long
|
|
do you think it'll be before he gets tired of a scrubby room
|
|
in a scrubby hotel? Besides, he hasn't any money. He must
|
|
come back."
|
|
|
|
"As long as I thought he'd run away with some woman I thought
|
|
there was a chance. I don't believe that sort of thing ever answers.
|
|
He'd have got sick to death of her in three months.
|
|
But if he hasn't gone because he's in love, then it's finished."
|
|
|
|
"Oh, I think that's awfully subtle," said the Colonel,
|
|
putting into the word all the contempt he felt for a quality
|
|
so alien to the traditions of his calling. "Don't you believe it.
|
|
He'll come back, and, as Dorothy says, I dare say he'll be
|
|
none the worse for having had a bit of a fling."
|
|
|
|
"But I don't want him back," she said.
|
|
|
|
"Amy!"
|
|
|
|
It was anger that had seized Mrs. Strickland, and her pallor
|
|
was the pallor of a cold and sudden rage. She spoke quickly now,
|
|
with little gasps.
|
|
|
|
"I could have forgiven it if he'd fallen desperately in love
|
|
with someone and gone off with her. I should have thought
|
|
that natural. I shouldn't really have blamed him. I should
|
|
have thought he was led away. Men are so weak, and women are
|
|
so unscrupulous. But this is different. I hate him.
|
|
I'll never forgive him now."
|
|
|
|
Colonel MacAndrew and his wife began to talk to her together.
|
|
They were astonished. They told her she was mad. They could
|
|
not understand. Mrs. Strickland turned desperately to me.
|
|
|
|
"Don't <i you> see?" she cried.
|
|
|
|
"I'm not sure. Do you mean that you could have forgiven him
|
|
if he'd left you for a woman, but not if he's left you for an idea?
|
|
You think you're a match for the one, but against the
|
|
other you're helpless?"
|
|
|
|
Mrs. Strickland gave mt a look in which I read no great
|
|
friendliness, but did not answer. Perhaps I had struck home.
|
|
She went on in a low and trembling voice:
|
|
|
|
"I never knew it was possible to hate anyone as much as I hate him.
|
|
Do you know, I've been comforting myself by thinking
|
|
that however long it lasted he'd want me at the end? I knew
|
|
when he was dying he'd send for me, and I was ready to go;
|
|
I'd have nursed him like a mother, and at the last I'd have told
|
|
him that it didn't matter, I'd loved him always, and I forgave
|
|
him everything."
|
|
|
|
I have always been a little disconcerted by the passion women
|
|
have for behaving beautifully at the death-bed of those they love.
|
|
Sometimes it seems as if they grudge the longevity which
|
|
postpones their chance of an effective scene.
|
|
|
|
"But now -- now it's finished. I'm as indifferent to him as
|
|
if he were a stranger. I should like him to die miserable,
|
|
poor, and starving, without a friend. I hope he'll rot with
|
|
some loathsome disease. I've done with him."
|
|
|
|
I thought it as well then to say what Strickland had suggested.
|
|
|
|
"If you want to divorce him, he's quite willing to do whatever
|
|
is necessary to make it possible."
|
|
|
|
"Why should I give him his freedom?"
|
|
|
|
"I don't think he wants it. He merely thought it might be
|
|
more convenient to you."
|
|
|
|
Mrs. Strickland shrugged her shoulders impatiently. I think
|
|
I was a little disappointed in her. I expected then people to
|
|
be more of a piece than I do now, and I was distressed to find
|
|
so much vindictiveness in so charming a creature. I did not
|
|
realise how motley are the qualities that go to make up a
|
|
human being. Now I am well aware that pettiness and grandeur,
|
|
malice and charity, hatred and love, can find place side by
|
|
side in the same human heart.
|
|
|
|
I wondered if there was anything I could say that would ease
|
|
the sense of bitter humiliation which at present tormented
|
|
Mrs. Strickland. I thought I would try.
|
|
|
|
"You know, I'm not sure that your husband is quite responsible
|
|
for his actions. I do not think he is himself. He seems to
|
|
me to be possessed by some power which is using him for its
|
|
own ends, and in whose hold he is as helpless as a fly in a
|
|
spider's web. It's as though someone had cast a spell over him.
|
|
I'm reminded of those strange stories one sometimes
|
|
hears of another personality entering into a man and driving
|
|
out the old one. The soul lives unstably in the body, and is
|
|
capable of mysterious transformations. In the old days they
|
|
would say Charles Strickland had a devil."
|
|
|
|
Mrs. MacAndrew smoothed down the lap of her gown, and gold
|
|
bangles fell over her wrists.
|
|
|
|
"All that seems to me very far-fetched," she said acidly.
|
|
"I don't deny that perhaps Amy took her husband a little too much
|
|
for granted. If she hadn't been so busy with her own affairs,
|
|
I can't believe that she wouldn't have suspected something was
|
|
the matter. I don't think that Alec could have something on
|
|
his mind for a year or more without my having a pretty shrewd
|
|
idea of it."
|
|
|
|
The Colonel stared into vacancy, and I wondered whether anyone
|
|
could be quite so innocent of guile as he looked.
|
|
|
|
"But that doesn't prevent the fact that Charles Strickland is
|
|
a heartless beast." She looked at me severely. "I can tell
|
|
you why he left his wife -- from pure selfishness and nothing
|
|
else whatever."
|
|
|
|
"That is certainly the simplest explanation," I said.
|
|
But I thought it explained nothing. When, saying I was tired,
|
|
I rose to go, Mrs. Strickland made no attempt to detain me.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter XVI
|
|
|
|
|
|
What followed showed that Mrs. Strickland was a woman
|
|
of character. Whatever anguish she suffered she concealed.
|
|
She saw shrewdly that the world is quickly bored by the
|
|
recital of misfortune, and willingly avoids the sight of distress.
|
|
Whenever she went out -- and compassion for her misadventure
|
|
made her friends eager to entertain her -- she bore a
|
|
demeanour that was perfect. She was brave, but not too obviously;
|
|
cheerful, but not brazenly; and she seemed more
|
|
anxious to listen to the troubles of others than to discuss
|
|
her own. Whenever she spoke of her husband it was with pity.
|
|
Her attitude towards him at first perplexed me. One day she
|
|
said to me:
|
|
|
|
"You know, I'm convinced you were mistaken about Charles being alone.
|
|
From what I've been able to gather from certain
|
|
sources that I can't tell you, I know that he didn't leave
|
|
England by himself."
|
|
|
|
"In that case he has a positive genius for covering up his tracks."
|
|
|
|
She looked away and slightly coloured.
|
|
|
|
"What I mean is, if anyone talks to you about it, please don't
|
|
contradict it if they say he eloped with somebody."
|
|
|
|
"Of course not."
|
|
|
|
She changed the conversation as though it were a matter to
|
|
which she attached no importance. I discovered presently that
|
|
a peculiar story was circulating among her friends. They said
|
|
that Charles Strickland had become infatuated with a French
|
|
dancer, whom he had first seen in the ballet at the Empire,
|
|
and had accompanied her to Paris. I could not find out how
|
|
this had arisen, but, singularly enough, it created much
|
|
sympathy for Mrs. Strickland, and at the same time gave her
|
|
not a little prestige. This was not without its use in the
|
|
calling which she had decided to follow. Colonel MacAndrew
|
|
had not exaggerated when he said she would be penniless, and
|
|
it was necessary for her to earn her own living as quickly as
|
|
she could. She made up her mind to profit by her acquaintance
|
|
with so many writers, and without loss of time began to learn
|
|
shorthand and typewriting. Her education made it likely that
|
|
she would be a typist more efficient than the average, and her
|
|
story made her claims appealing. Her friends promised to send
|
|
her work, and took care to recommend her to all theirs.
|
|
|
|
The MacAndrews, who were childless and in easy circumstances,
|
|
arranged to undertake the care of the children, and Mrs.
|
|
Strickland had only herself to provide for. She let her flat
|
|
and sold her furniture. She settled in two tiny rooms in
|
|
Westminster, and faced the world anew. She was so efficient
|
|
that it was certain she would make a success of the adventure.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter XVII
|
|
|
|
|
|
It was about five years after this that I decided to live in
|
|
Paris for a while. I was growing stale in London. I was
|
|
tired of doing much the same thing every day. My friends
|
|
pursued their course with uneventfulness; they had no longer
|
|
any surprises for me, and when I met them I knew pretty well
|
|
what they would say; even their love-affairs had a tedious banality.
|
|
We were like tram-cars running on their lines from terminus
|
|
to terminus, and it was possible to calculate within small
|
|
limits the number of passengers they would carry. Life was
|
|
ordered too pleasantly. I was seized with panic. I gave
|
|
up my small apartment, sold my few belongings, and resolved to
|
|
start afresh.
|
|
|
|
I called on Mrs. Strickland before I left. I had not seen her
|
|
for some time, and I noticed changes in her; it was not only
|
|
that she was older, thinner, and more lined; I think her
|
|
character had altered. She had made a success of her
|
|
business, and now had an office in Chancery Lane; she did
|
|
little typing herself, but spent her time correcting the work
|
|
of the four girls she employed. She had had the idea of
|
|
giving it a certain daintiness, and she made much use of blue
|
|
and red inks; she bound the copy in coarse paper, that looked
|
|
vaguely like watered silk, in various pale colours; and she
|
|
had acquired a reputation for neatness and accuracy. She was
|
|
making money. But she could not get over the idea that to
|
|
earn her living was somewhat undignified, and she was inclined
|
|
to remind you that she was a lady by birth. She could not
|
|
help bringing into her conversation the names of people she
|
|
knew which would satisfy you that she had not sunk in the
|
|
social scale. She was a little ashamed of her courage and
|
|
business capacity, but delighted that she was going to dine
|
|
the next night with a K.C. who lived in South Kensington.
|
|
She was pleased to be able to tell you that her son was at Cambridge,
|
|
and it was with a little laugh that she spoke of the rush
|
|
of dances to which her daughter, just out, was invited.
|
|
I suppose I said a very stupid thing.
|
|
|
|
"Is she going into your business?" I asked.
|
|
|
|
"Oh no; I wouldn't let her do that," Mrs. Strickland answered.
|
|
"She's so pretty. I'm sure she'll marry well."
|
|
|
|
"I should have thought it would be a help to you."
|
|
|
|
"Several people have suggested that she should go on the
|
|
stage, but of course I couldn't consent to that, I know all
|
|
the chief dramatists, and I could get her a part to-morrow,
|
|
but I shouldn't like her to mix with all sorts of people."
|
|
|
|
I was a little chilled by Mrs. Strickland's exclusiveness.
|
|
|
|
"Do you ever hear of your husband?"
|
|
|
|
"No; I haven't heard a word. He may be dead for all I know."
|
|
|
|
"I may run across him in Paris. Would you like me to let you
|
|
know about him?"
|
|
|
|
She hesitated a minute.
|
|
|
|
"If he's in any real want I'm prepared to help him a little.
|
|
I'd send you a certain sum of money, and you could give it him
|
|
gradually, as he needed it."
|
|
|
|
"That's very good of you," I said.
|
|
|
|
But I knew it was not kindness that prompted the offer. It is
|
|
not true that suffering ennobles the character; happiness does
|
|
that sometimes, but suffering, for the most part, makes men
|
|
petty and vindictive.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter XVIII
|
|
|
|
|
|
In point of fact, I met Strickland before I had been a
|
|
fortnight in Paris.
|
|
|
|
I quickly found myself a tiny apartment on the fifth floor of
|
|
a house in the Rue des Dames, and for a couple of hundred
|
|
francs bought at a second-hand dealer's enough furniture to
|
|
make it habitable. I arranged with the concierge to make my
|
|
coffee in the morning and to keep the place clean. Then I
|
|
went to see my friend Dirk Stroeve.
|
|
|
|
Dirk Stroeve was one of those persons whom, according to your
|
|
character, you cannot think of without derisive laughter or an
|
|
embarrassed shrug of the shoulders. Nature had made him a buffoon.
|
|
He was a painter, but a very bad one, whom I had met
|
|
in Rome, and I still remembered his pictures. He had a
|
|
genuine enthusiasm for the commonplace. His soul palpitating
|
|
with love of art, he painted the models who hung about the
|
|
stairway of Bernini in the Piazza de Spagna, undaunted by
|
|
their obvious picturesqueness; and his studio was full of
|
|
canvases on which were portrayed moustachioed, large-eyed
|
|
peasants in peaked hats, urchins in becoming rags, and women
|
|
in bright petticoats. Sometimes they lounged at the steps of
|
|
a church, and sometimes dallied among cypresses against a
|
|
cloudless sky; sometimes they made love by a Renaissance well-head,
|
|
and sometimes they wandered through the Campagna by the side
|
|
of an ox-waggon. They were carefully drawn and carefully painted.
|
|
A photograph could not have been more exact. One of
|
|
the painters at the Villa Medici had called him <i Le Maitre
|
|
de la Boite a Chocoloats.> To look at his pictures you would
|
|
have thought that Monet, Manet, and the rest of the
|
|
Impressionists had never been.
|
|
|
|
"I don't pretend to be a great painter," he said, "I'm not a
|
|
Michael Angelo, no, but I have something. I sell. I bring
|
|
romance into the homes of all sorts of people. Do you know,
|
|
they buy my pictures not only in Holland, but in Norway and
|
|
Sweden and Denmark? It's mostly merchants who buy them, and
|
|
rich tradesmen. You can't imagine what the winters are like
|
|
in those countries, so long and dark and cold. They like to
|
|
think that Italy is like my pictures. That's what they
|
|
expect. That's what I expected Italy to be before I came
|
|
here."
|
|
|
|
And I think that was the vision that had remained with him
|
|
always, dazzling his eyes so that he could not see the truth;
|
|
and notwithstanding the brutality of fact, he continued to see
|
|
with the eyes of the spirit an Italy of romantic brigands and
|
|
picturesque ruins. It was an ideal that he painted -- a poor one,
|
|
common and shop-soiled, but still it was an ideal; and it
|
|
gave his character a peculiar charm.
|
|
|
|
It was because I felt this that Dirk Stroeve was not to me,
|
|
as to others, merely an object of ridicule. His fellow-painters
|
|
made no secret of their contempt for his work, but he earned a
|
|
fair amount of money, and they did not hesitate to make free
|
|
use of his purse. He was generous, and the needy, laughing at
|
|
him because he believed so naively their stories of distress,
|
|
borrowed from him with effrontery. He was very emotional, yet
|
|
his feeling, so easily aroused, had in it something absurd,
|
|
so that you accepted his kindness, but felt no gratitude.
|
|
To take money from him was like robbing a child, and you despised
|
|
him because he was so foolish. I imagine that a pickpocket,
|
|
proud of his light fingers, must feel a sort of indignation
|
|
with the careless woman who leaves in a cab a vanity-bag with
|
|
all her jewels in it. Nature had made him a butt, but had
|
|
denied him insensibility. He writhed under the jokes,
|
|
practical and otherwise, which were perpetually made at his
|
|
expense, and yet never ceased, it seemed wilfully, to expose
|
|
himself to them. He was constantly wounded, and yet his good-
|
|
nature was such that he could not bear malice: the viper might
|
|
sting him, but he never learned by experience, and had no
|
|
sooner recovered from his pain than he tenderly placed it once
|
|
more in his bosom. His life was a tragedy written in the
|
|
terms of knockabout farce. Because I did not laugh at him he
|
|
was grateful to me, and he used to pour into my sympathetic
|
|
ear the long list of his troubles. The saddest thing about
|
|
them was that they were grotesque, and the more pathetic they were,
|
|
the more you wanted to laugh.
|
|
|
|
But though so bad a painter, he had a very delicate feeling
|
|
for art, and to go with him to picture-galleries was a rare treat.
|
|
His enthusiasm was sincere and his criticism acute.
|
|
He was catholic. He had not only a true appreciation of the
|
|
old masters, but sympathy with the moderns. He was quick to
|
|
discover talent, and his praise was generous. I think I have
|
|
never known a man whose judgment was surer. And he was better
|
|
educated than most painters. He was not, like most of them,
|
|
ignorant of kindred arts, and his taste for music and
|
|
literature gave depth and variety to his comprehension of painting.
|
|
To a young man like myself his advice and guidance were
|
|
of incomparable value.
|
|
|
|
When I left Rome I corresponded with him, and about once in
|
|
two months received from him long letters in queer English,
|
|
which brought before me vividly his spluttering, enthusiastic,
|
|
gesticulating conversation. Some time before I went to Paris
|
|
he had married an Englishwoman, and was now settled in a
|
|
studio in Montmartre. I had not seen him for four years,
|
|
and had never met his wife.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter XIX
|
|
|
|
|
|
I had not announced my arrival to Stroeve, and when I rang the
|
|
bell of his studio, on opening the door himself, for a moment
|
|
he did not know me. Then he gave a cry of delighted surprise
|
|
and drew me in. It was charming to be welcomed with so much
|
|
eagerness. His wife was seated near the stove at her sewing,
|
|
and she rose as I came in. He introduced me.
|
|
|
|
"Don't you remember?" he said to her. "I've talked to you
|
|
about him often." And then to me: "But why didn't you let me
|
|
know you were coming? How long have you been here? How long
|
|
are you going to stay? Why didn't you come an hour earlier,
|
|
and we would have dined together?"
|
|
|
|
He bombarded me with questions. He sat me down in a chair,
|
|
patting me as though I were a cushion, pressed cigars upon me,
|
|
cakes, wine. He could not let me alone. He was heart-broken
|
|
because he had no whisky, wanted to make coffee for me,
|
|
racked his brain for something he could possibly do for me,
|
|
and beamed and laughed, and in the exuberance of his delight
|
|
sweated at every pore.
|
|
|
|
"You haven't changed," I said, smiling, as I looked at him.
|
|
|
|
He had the same absurd appearance that I remembered. He was a
|
|
fat little man, with short legs, young still -- he could not
|
|
have been more than thirty -- but prematurely bald. His face
|
|
was perfectly round, and he had a very high colour, a white
|
|
skin, red cheeks, and red lips. His eyes were blue and round
|
|
too, he wore large gold-rimmed spectacles, and his eyebrows
|
|
were so fair that you could not see them. He reminded you of
|
|
those jolly, fat merchants that Rubens painted.
|
|
|
|
When I told him that I meant to live in Paris for a while, and
|
|
had taken an apartment, he reproached me bitterly for not
|
|
having let him know. He would have found me an apartment
|
|
himself, and lent me furniture -- did I really mean that I had
|
|
gone to the expense of buying it? -- and he would have helped
|
|
me to move in. He really looked upon it as unfriendly that I
|
|
had not given him the opportunity of making himself useful to me.
|
|
Meanwhile, Mrs. Stroeve sat quietly mending her stockings,
|
|
without talking, and she listened to all he said with a quiet
|
|
smile on her lips.
|
|
|
|
"So, you see, I'm married," he said suddenly; "what do you
|
|
think of my wife?"
|
|
|
|
He beamed at her, and settled his spectacles on the bridge of
|
|
his nose. The sweat made them constantly slip down.
|
|
|
|
"What on earth do you expect me to say to that?" I laughed.
|
|
|
|
"Really, Dirk," put in Mrs. Stroeve, smiling.
|
|
|
|
"But isn't she wonderful? I tell you, my boy, lose no time;
|
|
get married as soon as ever you can. I'm the happiest man alive.
|
|
Look at her sitting there. Doesn't she make a picture?
|
|
Chardin, eh? I've seen all the most beautiful women
|
|
in the world; I've never seen anyone more beautiful than
|
|
Madame Dirk Stroeve."
|
|
|
|
"If you don't be quiet, Dirk, I shall go away."
|
|
|
|
<i "Mon petit chou">, he said.
|
|
|
|
She flushed a little, embarrassed by the passion in his tone.
|
|
His letters had told me that he was very much in love with his
|
|
wife, and I saw that he could hardly take his eyes off her.
|
|
I could not tell if she loved him. Poor pantaloon, he was not
|
|
an object to excite love, but the smile in her eyes was
|
|
affectionate, and it was possible that her reserve concealed a
|
|
very deep feeling. She was not the ravishing creature that
|
|
his love-sick fancy saw, but she had a grave comeliness.
|
|
She was rather tall, and her gray dress, simple and quite
|
|
well-cut, did not hide the fact that her figure was beautiful.
|
|
It was a figure that might have appealed more to the sculptor
|
|
than to the costumier. Her hair, brown and abundant, was
|
|
plainly done, her face was very pale, and her features were
|
|
good without being distinguished. She had quiet gray eyes.
|
|
She just missed being beautiful, and in missing it was not
|
|
even pretty. But when Stroeve spoke of Chardin it was not
|
|
without reason, and she reminded me curiously of that pleasant
|
|
housewife in her mob-cap and apron whom the great painter has
|
|
immortalised. I could imagine her sedately busy among her
|
|
pots and pans, making a ritual of her household duties, so
|
|
that they acquired a moral significance; I did not suppose
|
|
that she was clever or could ever be amusing, but there was
|
|
something in her grave intentness which excited my interest.
|
|
Her reserve was not without mystery. I wondered why she had
|
|
married Dirk Stroeve. Though she was English, I could not
|
|
exactly place her, and it was not obvious from what rank in
|
|
society she sprang, what had been her upbringing, or how she
|
|
had lived before her marriage. She was very silent, but when
|
|
she spoke it was with a pleasant voice, and her manners
|
|
were natural.
|
|
|
|
I asked Stroeve if he was working.
|
|
|
|
"Working? I'm painting better than I've ever painted before."
|
|
|
|
We sat in the studio, and he waved his hand to an unfinished
|
|
picture on an easel. I gave a little start. He was painting
|
|
a group of Italian peasants, in the costume of the Campagna,
|
|
lounging on the steps of a Roman church.
|
|
|
|
"Is that what you're doing now?" I asked.
|
|
|
|
"Yes. I can get my models here just as well as in Rome."
|
|
|
|
"Don't you think it's very beautiful?" said Mrs. Stroeve.
|
|
|
|
"This foolish wife of mine thinks I'm a great artist," said he.
|
|
|
|
His apologetic laugh did not disguise the pleasure that he felt.
|
|
His eyes lingered on his picture. It was strange that
|
|
his critical sense, so accurate and unconventional when he
|
|
dealt with the work of others, should be satisfied in himself
|
|
with what was hackneyed and vulgar beyond belief.
|
|
|
|
"Show him some more of your pictures," she said.
|
|
|
|
"Shall I?"
|
|
|
|
Though he had suffered so much from the ridicule of his friends,
|
|
Dirk Stroeve, eager for praise and naively self-satisfied,
|
|
could never resist displaying his work. He brought out
|
|
a picture of two curly-headed Italian urchins playing marbles.
|
|
|
|
"Aren't they sweet?" said Mrs. Stroeve.
|
|
|
|
And then he showed me more. I discovered that in Paris he had
|
|
been painting just the same stale, obviously picturesque
|
|
things that he had painted for years in Rome. It was all
|
|
false, insincere, shoddy; and yet no one was more honest,
|
|
sincere, and frank than Dirk Stroeve. Who could resolve
|
|
the contradiction?
|
|
|
|
I do not know what put it into my head to ask:
|
|
|
|
"I say, have you by any chance run across a painter called
|
|
Charles Strickland?"
|
|
|
|
"You don't mean to say you know him?" cried Stroeve.
|
|
|
|
"Beast," said his wife.
|
|
|
|
Stroeve laughed.
|
|
|
|
<i "Ma pauvre cherie."> He went over to her and kissed both
|
|
her hands. "She doesn't like him. How strange that you
|
|
should know Strickland!"
|
|
|
|
"I don't like bad manners," said Mrs. Stroeve.
|
|
|
|
Dirk, laughing still, turned to me to explain.
|
|
|
|
"You see, I asked him to come here one day and look at my
|
|
pictures. Well, he came, and I showed him everything I had."
|
|
Stroeve hesitated a moment with embarrassment. I do not know
|
|
why he had begun the story against himself; he felt an
|
|
awkwardness at finishing it. "He looked at -- at my pictures,
|
|
and he didn't say anything. I thought he was reserving his
|
|
judgment till the end. And at last I said: `There, that's
|
|
the lot!' He said: `I came to ask you to lend me twenty francs.'"
|
|
|
|
"And Dirk actually gave it him," said his wife indignantly.
|
|
|
|
"I was so taken aback. I didn't like to refuse. He put the
|
|
money in his pocket, just nodded, said 'Thanks,' and walked out."
|
|
|
|
Dirk Stroeve, telling the story, had such a look of blank
|
|
astonishment on his round, foolish face that it was almost
|
|
impossible not to laugh.
|
|
|
|
"I shouldn't have minded if he'd said my pictures were bad,
|
|
but he said nothing -- nothing."
|
|
|
|
"And you <i will> tell the story, Dirk," Said his wife.
|
|
|
|
It was lamentable that one was more amused by the ridiculous
|
|
figure cut by the Dutchman than outraged by Strickland's
|
|
brutal treatment of him.
|
|
|
|
"I hope I shall never see him again," said Mrs. Stroeve.
|
|
|
|
Stroeve smiled and shrugged his shoulders. He had already
|
|
recovered his good-humour.
|
|
|
|
"The fact remains that he's a great artist, a very great artist."
|
|
|
|
"Strickland?" I exclaimed. "It can't be the same man."
|
|
|
|
"A big fellow with a red beard. Charles Strickland.
|
|
An Englishman."
|
|
|
|
"He had no beard when I knew him, but if he has grown one it
|
|
might well be red. The man I'm thinking of only began
|
|
painting five years ago."
|
|
|
|
"That's it. He's a great artist."
|
|
|
|
"Impossible."
|
|
|
|
"Have I ever been mistaken?" Dirk asked me. "I tell you he
|
|
has genius. I'm convinced of it. In a hundred years, if you
|
|
and I are remembered at all, it will be because we knew
|
|
Charles Strickland."
|
|
|
|
I was astonished, and at the same time I was very much excited.
|
|
I remembered suddenly my last talk with him.
|
|
|
|
"Where can one see his work?" I asked. "Is he having any success?
|
|
Where is he living?"
|
|
|
|
"No; he has no success. I don't think he's ever sold a picture.
|
|
When you speak to men about him they only laugh.
|
|
But I <i know> he's a great artist. After all, they laughed
|
|
at Manet. Corot never sold a picture. I don't know where he
|
|
lives, but I can take you to see him. He goes to a cafe in
|
|
the Avenue de Clichy at seven o'clock every evening. If you
|
|
like we'll go there to-morrow."
|
|
|
|
"I'm not sure if he'll wish to see me. I think I may remind
|
|
him of a time he prefers to forget. But I'll come all the same.
|
|
Is there any chance of seeing any of his pictures?"
|
|
|
|
"Not from him. He won't show you a thing. There's a little
|
|
dealer I know who has two or three. But you mustn't go without me;
|
|
you wouldn't understand. I must show them to you myself."
|
|
|
|
"Dirk, you make me impatient," said Mrs. Stroeve. "How can
|
|
you talk like that about his pictures when he treated you as
|
|
he did?" She turned to me. "Do you know, when some Dutch
|
|
people came here to buy Dirk's pictures he tried to persuade
|
|
them to buy Strickland's? He insisted on bringing them here
|
|
to show."
|
|
|
|
"What did <i you> think of them?" I asked her, smiling.
|
|
|
|
"They were awful."
|
|
|
|
"Ah, sweetheart, you don't understand."
|
|
|
|
"Well, your Dutch people were furious with you. They thought
|
|
you were having a joke with them."
|
|
|
|
Dirk Stroeve took off his spectacles and wiped them. His
|
|
flushed face was shining with excitement.
|
|
|
|
"Why should you think that beauty, which is the most precious
|
|
thing in the world, lies like a stone on the beach for the
|
|
careless passer-by to pick up idly? Beauty is something
|
|
wonderful and strange that the artist fashions out of the
|
|
chaos of the world in the torment of his soul. And when he
|
|
has made it, it is not given to all to know it. To recognize
|
|
it you must repeat the adventure of the artist. It is a
|
|
melody that he sings to you, and to hear it again in your own
|
|
heart you want knowledge and sensitiveness and imagination."
|
|
|
|
"Why did I always think your pictures beautiful, Dirk?
|
|
I admired them the very first time I saw them."
|
|
|
|
Stroeve's lips trembled a little.
|
|
|
|
"Go to bed, my precious. I will walk a few steps with our
|
|
friend, and then I will come back."
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter XX
|
|
|
|
|
|
Dirk Stroeve agreed to fetch me on the following evening and
|
|
take me to the cafe at which Strickland was most likely to be found.
|
|
I was interested to learn that it was the same as that
|
|
at which Strickland and I had drunk absinthe when I had gone
|
|
over to Paris to see him. The fact that he had never changed
|
|
suggested a sluggishness of habit which seemed to me characteristic.
|
|
|
|
"There he is," said Stroeve, as we reached the cafe.
|
|
|
|
Though it was October, the evening was warm, and the tables on
|
|
the pavement were crowded. I ran my eyes over them, but did
|
|
not see Strickland.
|
|
|
|
"Look. Over there, in the corner. He's playing chess."
|
|
|
|
I noticed a man bending over a chess-board, but could see only
|
|
a large felt hat and a red beard. We threaded our way among
|
|
the tables till we came to him.
|
|
|
|
"Strickland."
|
|
|
|
He looked up.
|
|
|
|
"Hulloa, fatty. What do you want?"
|
|
|
|
"I've brought an old friend to see you."
|
|
|
|
Strickland gave me a glance, and evidently did not recognise me.
|
|
He resumed his scrutiny of the chessboard.
|
|
|
|
"Sit down, and don't make a noise," he said.
|
|
|
|
He moved a piece and straightway became absorbed in the game.
|
|
Poor Stroeve gave me a troubled look, but I was not
|
|
disconcerted by so little. I ordered something to drink,
|
|
and waited quietly till Strickland had finished. I welcomed the
|
|
opportunity to examine him at my ease. I certainly should
|
|
never have known him. In the first place his red beard,
|
|
ragged and untrimmed, hid much of his face, and his hair was long;
|
|
but the most surprising change in him was his extreme thinness.
|
|
It made his great nose protrude more arrogantly;
|
|
it emphasized his cheekbones; it made his eyes seem larger.
|
|
There were deep hollows at his temples. His body was cadaverous.
|
|
He wore the same suit that I had seen him in five years
|
|
before; it was torn and stained, threadbare, and it hung
|
|
upon him loosely, as though it had been made for someone else.
|
|
I noticed his hands, dirty, with long nails; they were merely
|
|
bone and sinew, large and strong; but I had forgotten that
|
|
they were so shapely. He gave me an extraordinary impression
|
|
as he sat there, his attention riveted on his game -- an
|
|
impression of great strength; and I could not understand why
|
|
it was that his emaciation somehow made it more striking.
|
|
|
|
Presently, after moving, he leaned back and gazed with a
|
|
curious abstraction at his antagonist. This was a fat,
|
|
bearded Frenchman. The Frenchman considered the position,
|
|
then broke suddenly into jovial expletives, and with an
|
|
impatient gesture, gathering up the pieces, flung them into
|
|
their box. He cursed Strickland freely, then, calling for the
|
|
waiter, paid for the drinks, and left. Stroeve drew his chair
|
|
closer to the table.
|
|
|
|
"Now I suppose we can talk," he said.
|
|
|
|
Strickland's eyes rested on him, and there was in them a
|
|
malicious expression. I felt sure he was seeking for some gibe,
|
|
could think of none, and so was forced to silence.
|
|
|
|
"I've brought an old friend to see you," repeated Stroeve,
|
|
beaming cheerfully.
|
|
|
|
Strickland looked at me thoughtfully for nearly a minute.
|
|
I did not speak.
|
|
|
|
"I've never seen him in my life," he said.
|
|
|
|
I do not know why he said this, for I felt certain I had
|
|
caught a gleam of recognition in his eyes. I was not so
|
|
easily abashed as I had been some years earlier.
|
|
|
|
"I saw your wife the other day," I said. "I felt sure you'd
|
|
like to have the latest news of her."
|
|
|
|
He gave a short laugh. His eyes twinkled.
|
|
|
|
"We had a jolly evening together," he said. "How long ago is it?"
|
|
|
|
"Five years."
|
|
|
|
He called for another absinthe. Stroeve, with voluble tongue,
|
|
explained how he and I had met, and by what an accident we
|
|
discovered that we both knew Strickland. I do not know if
|
|
Strickland listened. He glanced at me once or twice
|
|
reflectively, but for the most part seemed occupied with his
|
|
own thoughts; and certainly without Stroeve's babble the
|
|
conversation would have been difficult. In half an hour the
|
|
Dutchman, looking at his watch, announced that he must go.
|
|
He asked whether I would come too. I thought, alone, I might get
|
|
something out of Strickland, and so answered that I would stay.
|
|
|
|
When the fat man had left I said:
|
|
|
|
"Dirk Stroeve thinks you're a great artist."
|
|
|
|
"What the hell do you suppose I care?"
|
|
|
|
"Will you let me see your pictures?"
|
|
|
|
"Why should I?"
|
|
|
|
"I might feel inclined to buy one."
|
|
|
|
"I might not feel inclined to sell one."
|
|
|
|
"Are you making a good living?" I asked, smiling.
|
|
|
|
He chuckled.
|
|
|
|
"Do I look it?"
|
|
|
|
"You look half starved."
|
|
|
|
"I am half starved."
|
|
|
|
"Then come and let's have a bit of dinner."
|
|
|
|
"Why do you ask me?"
|
|
|
|
"Not out of charity," I answered coolly. "I don't really care
|
|
a twopenny damn if you starve or not."
|
|
|
|
His eyes lit up again.
|
|
|
|
"Come on, then," he said, getting up. "I'd like a decent meal."
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter XXI
|
|
|
|
|
|
I let him take me to a restaurant of his choice, but on the
|
|
way I bought a paper. When we had ordered our dinner,
|
|
I propped it against a bottle of St. Galmier and began to read.
|
|
We ate in silence. I felt him looking at me now and again,
|
|
but I took no notice. I meant to force him to conversation.
|
|
|
|
"Is there anything in the paper?" he said, as we approached
|
|
the end of our silent meal.
|
|
|
|
I fancied there was in his tone a slight note of exasperation.
|
|
|
|
"I always like to read the <i feuilleton> on the drama," I said.
|
|
|
|
I folded the paper and put it down beside me.
|
|
|
|
"I've enjoyed my dinner," he remarked.
|
|
|
|
"I think we might have our coffee here, don't you?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes."
|
|
|
|
We lit our cigars. I smoked in silence. I noticed that now
|
|
and then his eyes rested on me with a faint smile of amusement.
|
|
I waited patiently.
|
|
|
|
"What have you been up to since I saw you last?" he asked at
|
|
length.
|
|
|
|
I had not very much to say. It was a record of hard work and of
|
|
little adventure; of experiments in this direction and in that;
|
|
of the gradual acquisition of the knowledge of books and of men.
|
|
I took care to ask Strickland nothing about his own doings.
|
|
I showed not the least interest in him, and at last I
|
|
was rewarded. He began to talk of himself. But with his poor
|
|
gift of expression he gave but indications of what he had gone
|
|
through, and I had to fill up the gaps with my own imagination.
|
|
It was tantalising to get no more than hints
|
|
into a character that interested me so much. It was like
|
|
making one's way through a mutilated manuscript. I received
|
|
the impression of a life which was a bitter struggle against
|
|
every sort of difficulty; but I realised that much which would
|
|
have seemed horrible to most people did not in the least
|
|
affect him. Strickland was distinguished from most Englishmen
|
|
by his perfect indifference to comfort; it did not irk him to
|
|
live always in one shabby room; he had no need to be
|
|
surrounded by beautiful things. I do not suppose he had ever
|
|
noticed how dingy was the paper on the wall of the room in
|
|
which on my first visit I found him. He did not want arm-chairs
|
|
to sit in; he really felt more at his ease on a kitchen chair.
|
|
He ate with appetite, but was indifferent to what he ate;
|
|
to him it was only food that he devoured to still the
|
|
pangs of hunger; and when no food was to be had he seemed
|
|
capable of doing without. I learned that for six months he
|
|
had lived on a loaf of bread and a bottle of milk a day.
|
|
He was a sensual man, and yet was indifferent to sensual things.
|
|
He looked upon privation as no hardship. There was something
|
|
impressive in the manner in which he lived a life wholly of
|
|
the spirit.
|
|
|
|
When the small sum of money which he brought with him from
|
|
London came to an end he suffered from no dismay. He sold no
|
|
pictures; I think he made little attempt to sell any; he set
|
|
about finding some way to make a bit of money. He told me
|
|
with grim humour of the time he had spent acting as guide to
|
|
Cockneys who wanted to see the night side of life in Paris;
|
|
it was an occupation that appealed to his sardonic temper and
|
|
somehow or other he had acquired a wide acquaintance with the
|
|
more disreputable quarters of the city. He told me of the
|
|
long hours he spent walking about the Boulevard de la
|
|
Madeleine on the look-out for Englishmen, preferably the worse
|
|
for liquor, who desired to see things which the law forbade.
|
|
When in luck he was able to make a tidy sum; but the
|
|
shabbiness of his clothes at last frightened the sight-seers,
|
|
and he could not find people adventurous enough to trust
|
|
themselves to him. Then he happened on a job to translate the
|
|
advertisements of patent medicines which were sent broadcast
|
|
to the medical profession in England. During a strike he had
|
|
been employed as a house-painter.
|
|
|
|
Meanwhile he had never ceased to work at his art; but, soon
|
|
tiring of the studios, entirely by himself. He had never been
|
|
so poor that he could not buy canvas and paint, and really he
|
|
needed nothing else. So far as I could make out, he painted
|
|
with great difficulty, and in his unwillingness to accept help
|
|
from anyone lost much time in finding out for himself the
|
|
solution of technical problems which preceding generations had
|
|
already worked out one by one. He was aiming at something,
|
|
I knew not what, and perhaps he hardly knew himself; and I got
|
|
again more strongly the impression of a man possessed. He did
|
|
not seem quite sane. It seemed to me that he would not show
|
|
his pictures because he was really not interested in them.
|
|
He lived in a dream, and the reality meant nothing to him.
|
|
I had the feeling that he worked on a canvas with all the force
|
|
of his violent personality, oblivious of everything in his effort
|
|
to get what he saw with the mind's eye; and then, having
|
|
finished, not the picture perhaps, for I had an idea that he
|
|
seldom brought anything to completion, but the passion that
|
|
fired him, he lost all care for it. He was never satisfied
|
|
with what he had done; it seemed to him of no consequence
|
|
compared with the vision that obsessed his mind.
|
|
|
|
"Why don't you ever send your work to exhibitions?" I asked.
|
|
"I should have thought you'd like to know what people thought
|
|
about it."
|
|
|
|
"Would you?"
|
|
|
|
I cannot describe the unmeasurable contempt he put into the
|
|
two words.
|
|
|
|
"Don't you want fame? It's something that most artists
|
|
haven't been indifferent to."
|
|
|
|
"Children. How can you care for the opinion of the crowd,
|
|
when you don't care twopence for the opinion of the individual?"
|
|
|
|
"We're not all reasonable beings," I laughed.
|
|
|
|
"Who makes fame? Critics, writers, stockbrokers, women."
|
|
|
|
"Wouldn't it give you a rather pleasing sensation to think of
|
|
people you didn't know and had never seen receiving emotions,
|
|
subtle and passionate, from the work of your hands? Everyone
|
|
likes power. I can't imagine a more wonderful exercise of it
|
|
than to move the souls of men to pity or terror."
|
|
|
|
"Melodrama."
|
|
|
|
"Why do you mind if you paint well or badly?"
|
|
|
|
"I don't. I only want to paint what I see."
|
|
|
|
"I wonder if I could write on a desert island, with the
|
|
certainty that no eyes but mine would ever see what I had
|
|
written."
|
|
|
|
Strickland did not speak for a long time, but his eyes shone
|
|
strangely, as though he saw something that kindled his soul to
|
|
ecstasy.
|
|
|
|
"Sometimes I've thought of an island lost in a boundless sea,
|
|
where I could live in some hidden valley, among strange trees,
|
|
in silence. There I think I could find what I want."
|
|
|
|
He did not express himself quite like this. He used gestures
|
|
instead of adjectives, and he halted. I have put into my own
|
|
words what I think he wanted to say.
|
|
|
|
"Looking back on the last five years, do you think it was
|
|
worth it?" I asked.
|
|
|
|
He looked at me, and I saw that he did not know what I meant.
|
|
I explained.
|
|
|
|
"You gave up a comfortable home and a life as happy as the
|
|
average. You were fairly prosperous. You seem to have had a
|
|
rotten time in Paris. If you had your time over again would
|
|
you do what you did?"
|
|
|
|
"Rather."
|
|
|
|
"Do you know that you haven't asked anything about your wife
|
|
and children? Do you never think of them?"
|
|
|
|
"No."
|
|
|
|
"I wish you weren't so damned monosyllabic. Have you never
|
|
had a moment's regret for all the unhappiness you caused them?"
|
|
|
|
His lips broke into a smile, and he shook his head.
|
|
|
|
"I should have thought sometimes you couldn't help thinking of
|
|
the past. I don't mean the past of seven or eight years ago,
|
|
but further back still, when you first met your wife, and
|
|
loved her, and married her. Don't you remember the joy with
|
|
which you first took her in your arms?"
|
|
|
|
"I don't think of the past. The only thing that matters is
|
|
the everlasting present."
|
|
|
|
I thought for a moment over this reply. It was obscure,
|
|
perhaps, but I thought that I saw dimly his meaning.
|
|
|
|
"Are you happy?" I asked.
|
|
|
|
"Yes."
|
|
|
|
I was silent. I looked at him reflectively. He held my
|
|
stare, and presently a sardonic twinkle lit up his eyes.
|
|
|
|
"I'm afraid you disapprove of me?"
|
|
|
|
"Nonsense," I answered promptly; "I don't disapprove of the
|
|
boa-constrictor; on the contrary, I'm interested in his mental
|
|
processes."
|
|
|
|
"It's a purely professional interest you take in me?"
|
|
|
|
"Purely."
|
|
|
|
"It's only right that you shouldn't disapprove of me.
|
|
You have a despicable character."
|
|
|
|
"Perhaps that's why you feel at home with me," I retorted.
|
|
|
|
He smiled dryly, but said nothing. I wish I knew how to
|
|
describe his smile. I do not know that it was attractive,
|
|
but it lit up his face, changing the expression, which was
|
|
generally sombre, and gave it a look of not ill-natured malice.
|
|
It was a slow smile, starting and sometimes ending in
|
|
the eyes; it was very sensual, neither cruel nor kindly,
|
|
but suggested rather the inhuman glee of the satyr. It was his
|
|
smile that made me ask him:
|
|
|
|
"Haven't you been in love since you came to Paris?"
|
|
|
|
"I haven't got time for that sort of nonsense. Life isn't
|
|
long enough for love and art."
|
|
|
|
"Your appearance doesn't suggest the anchorite."
|
|
|
|
"All that business fills me with disgust."
|
|
|
|
"Human nature is a nuisance, isn't it?" I said.
|
|
|
|
"Why are you sniggering at me?"
|
|
|
|
"Because I don't believe you."
|
|
|
|
"Then you're a damned fool."
|
|
|
|
I paused, and I looked at him searchingly.
|
|
|
|
"What's the good of trying to humbug me?" I said.
|
|
|
|
"I don't know what you mean."
|
|
|
|
I smiled.
|
|
|
|
"Let me tell you. I imagine that for months the matter never
|
|
comes into your head, and you're able to persuade yourself
|
|
that you've finished with it for good and all. You rejoice in
|
|
your freedom, and you feel that at last you can call your soul
|
|
your own. You seem to walk with your head among the stars.
|
|
And then, all of a sudden you can't stand it any more, and you
|
|
notice that all the time your feet have been walking in the mud.
|
|
And you want to roll yourself in it. And you find some
|
|
woman, coarse and low and vulgar, some beastly creature in
|
|
whom all the horror of sex is blatant, and you fall upon her
|
|
like a wild animal. You drink till you're blind with rage."
|
|
|
|
He stared at me without the slightest movement. I held his
|
|
eyes with mine. I spoke very slowly.
|
|
|
|
"I'll tell you what must seem strange, that when it's over you
|
|
feel so extraordinarily pure. You feel like a disembodied
|
|
spirit, immaterial; and you seem to be able to touch beauty as
|
|
though it were a palpable thing; and you feel an intimate
|
|
communion with the breeze, and with the trees breaking into leaf,
|
|
and with the iridescence of the river. You feel like God.
|
|
Can you explain that to me?"
|
|
|
|
He kept his eyes fixed on mine till I had finished, and then
|
|
he turned away. There was on his face a strange look, and
|
|
I thought that so might a man look when he had died under
|
|
the torture. He was silent. I knew that our conversation
|
|
was ended.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter XXII
|
|
|
|
|
|
I settled down in Paris and began to write a play. I led a
|
|
very regular life, working in the morning, and in the
|
|
afternoon lounging about the gardens of the Luxembourg or
|
|
sauntering through the streets. I spent long hours in the
|
|
Louvre, the most friendly of all galleries and the most
|
|
convenient for meditation; or idled on the quays, fingering
|
|
second-hand books that I never meant to buy. I read a page
|
|
here and there, and made acquaintance with a great many
|
|
authors whom I was content to know thus desultorily. In the
|
|
evenings I went to see my friends. I looked in often on the
|
|
Stroeves, and sometimes shared their modest fare. Dirk
|
|
Stroeve flattered himself on his skill in cooking Italian
|
|
dishes, and I confess that his <i spaghetti> were very much
|
|
better than his pictures. It was a dinner for a King when he
|
|
brought in a huge dish of it, succulent with tomatoes, and we
|
|
ate it together with the good household bread and a bottle of
|
|
red wine. I grew more intimate with Blanche Stroeve, and I
|
|
think, because I was English and she knew few English people,
|
|
she was glad to see me. She was pleasant and simple, but she
|
|
remained always rather silent, and I knew not why, gave me the
|
|
impression that she was concealing something. But I thought that
|
|
was perhaps no more than a natural reserve accentuated by the
|
|
verbose frankness of her husband. Dirk never concealed anything.
|
|
He discussed the most intimate matters with a complete
|
|
lack of self-consciousness. Sometimes he embarrassed
|
|
his wife, and the only time I saw her put out of countenance
|
|
was when he insisted on telling me that he had taken a purge,
|
|
and went into somewhat realistic details on the subject.
|
|
The perfect seriousness with which he narrated his
|
|
misfortunes convulsed me with laughter, and this added to
|
|
Mrs. Stroeve's irritation.
|
|
|
|
"You seem to like making a fool of yourself," she said.
|
|
|
|
His round eyes grew rounder still, and his brow puckered in
|
|
dismay as he saw that she was angry.
|
|
|
|
"Sweetheart, have I vexed you? I'll never take another.
|
|
It was only because I was bilious. I lead a sedentary life.
|
|
I don't take enough exercise. For three days I hadn't ..."
|
|
|
|
"For goodness sake, hold your tongue," she interrupted, tears
|
|
of annoyance in her eyes.
|
|
|
|
His face fell, and he pouted his lips like a scolded child.
|
|
He gave me a look of appeal, so that I might put things right,
|
|
but, unable to control myself, I shook with helpless laughter.
|
|
|
|
We went one day to the picture-dealer in whose shop Stroeve
|
|
thought he could show me at least two or three of Strickland's
|
|
pictures, but when we arrived were told that Strickland
|
|
himself had taken them away. The dealer did not know why.
|
|
|
|
"But don't imagine to yourself that I make myself bad blood on
|
|
that account. I took them to oblige Monsieur Stroeve, and I
|
|
said I would sell them if I could. But really --" He
|
|
shrugged his shoulders. "I'm interested in the young men, but
|
|
<i voyons>, you yourself, Monsieur Stroeve, you don't think
|
|
there's any talent there."
|
|
|
|
"I give you my word of honour, there's no one painting to-day
|
|
in whose talent I am more convinced. Take my word for it,
|
|
you are missing a good affair. Some day those pictures will be
|
|
worth more than all you have in your shop. Remember Monet,
|
|
who could not get anyone to buy his pictures for a hundred francs.
|
|
What are they worth now?"
|
|
|
|
"True. But there were a hundred as good painters as Monet who
|
|
couldn't sell their pictures at that time, and their pictures
|
|
are worth nothing still. How can one tell? Is merit enough to
|
|
bring success? Don't believe it. <i Du reste>, it has still
|
|
to be proved that this friend of yours has merit. No one
|
|
claims it for him but Monsieur Stroeve."
|
|
|
|
"And how, then, will you recognise merit?" asked Dirk, red in
|
|
the face with anger.
|
|
|
|
"There is only one way -- by success."
|
|
|
|
"Philistine," cried Dirk.
|
|
|
|
"But think of the great artists of the past -- Raphael,
|
|
Michael Angelo, Ingres, Delacroix -- they were all successful."
|
|
|
|
"Let us go," said Stroeve to me, "or I shall kill this man."
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter XXIII
|
|
|
|
|
|
I saw Strickland not infrequently, and now and then played
|
|
chess with him. He was of uncertain temper. Sometimes he
|
|
would sit silent and abstracted, taking no notice of anyone;
|
|
and at others, when he was in a good humour, he would talk in
|
|
his own halting way. He never said a clever thing, but he had
|
|
a vein of brutal sarcasm which was not ineffective, and he
|
|
always said exactly what he thought. He was indifferent to
|
|
the susceptibilities of others, and when he wounded them was amused.
|
|
He was constantly offending Dirk Stroeve so bitterly
|
|
that he flung away, vowing he would never speak to him again;
|
|
but there was a solid force in Strickland that attracted the
|
|
fat Dutchman against his will, so that he came back, fawning
|
|
like a clumsy dog, though he knew that his only greeting would
|
|
be the blow he dreaded.
|
|
|
|
I do not know why Strickland put up with me. Our relations
|
|
were peculiar. One day he asked me to lend him fifty francs.
|
|
|
|
"I wouldn't dream of it," I replied.
|
|
|
|
"Why not?"
|
|
|
|
"It wouldn't amuse me."
|
|
|
|
"I'm frightfully hard up, you know."
|
|
|
|
"I don't care."
|
|
|
|
"You don't care if I starve?"
|
|
|
|
"Why on earth should I?" I asked in my turn.
|
|
|
|
He looked at me for a minute or two, pulling his untidy beard.
|
|
I smiled at him.
|
|
|
|
"What are you amused at?" he said, with a gleam of anger in
|
|
his eyes.
|
|
|
|
"You're so simple. You recognise no obligations. No one is
|
|
under any obligation to you."
|
|
|
|
"Wouldn't it make you uncomfortable if I went and hanged
|
|
myself because I'd been turned out of my room as I couldn't
|
|
pay the rent?"
|
|
|
|
"Not a bit."
|
|
|
|
He chuckled.
|
|
|
|
"You're bragging. If I really did you'd be overwhelmed with
|
|
remorse."
|
|
|
|
"Try it, and we'll see," I retorted.
|
|
|
|
A smile flickered in his eyes, and he stirred his absinthe in
|
|
silence.
|
|
|
|
"Would you like to play chess?" I asked.
|
|
|
|
"I don't mind."
|
|
|
|
We set up the pieces, and when the board was ready he
|
|
considered it with a comfortable eye. There is a sense of
|
|
satisfaction in looking at your men all ready for the fray.
|
|
|
|
"Did you really think I'd lend you money?" I asked.
|
|
|
|
"I didn't see why you shouldn't."
|
|
|
|
"You surprise me."
|
|
|
|
"Why?"
|
|
|
|
"It's disappointing to find that at heart you are sentimental.
|
|
I should have liked you better if you hadn't made that
|
|
ingenuous appeal to my sympathies."
|
|
|
|
"I should have despised you if you'd been moved by it," he answered.
|
|
|
|
"That's better," I laughed.
|
|
|
|
We began to play. We were both absorbed in the game. When it
|
|
was finished I said to him:
|
|
|
|
"Look here, if you're hard up, let me see your pictures.
|
|
If there's anything I like I'll buy it."
|
|
|
|
"Go to hell," he answered.
|
|
|
|
He got up and was about to go away. I stopped him.
|
|
|
|
"You haven't paid for your absinthe," I said, smiling.
|
|
|
|
He cursed me, flung down the money and left.
|
|
|
|
I did not see him for several days after that, but one
|
|
evening, when I was sitting in the cafe, reading a paper,
|
|
he came up and sat beside me.
|
|
|
|
"You haven't hanged yourself after all," I remarked.
|
|
|
|
"No. I've got a commission. I'm painting the portrait of a
|
|
retired plumber for two hundred francs."[5]
|
|
|
|
|
|
[5] This picture, formerly in the possession of a wealthy
|
|
manufacturer at Lille, who fled from that city on the approach
|
|
of the Germans, is now in the National Gallery at Stockholm.
|
|
The Swede is adept at the gentle pastime of fishing in
|
|
troubled waters.
|
|
|
|
|
|
"How did you manage that?"
|
|
|
|
"The woman where I get my bread recommended me. He'd told her
|
|
he was looking out for someone to paint him. I've got to give
|
|
her twenty francs."
|
|
|
|
"What's he like?"
|
|
|
|
"Splendid. He's got a great red face like a leg of mutton,
|
|
and on his right cheek there's an enormous mole with long
|
|
hairs growing out of it."
|
|
|
|
Strickland was in a good humour, and when Dirk Stroeve came
|
|
up and sat down with us he attacked him with ferocious banter.
|
|
He showed a skill I should never have credited him with in
|
|
finding the places where the unhappy Dutchman was most
|
|
sensitive. Strickland employed not the rapier of sarcasm but
|
|
the bludgeon of invective. The attack was so unprovoked that
|
|
Stroeve, taken unawares, was defenceless. He reminded you of
|
|
a frightened sheep running aimlessly hither and thither.
|
|
He was startled and amazed. At last the tears ran from his eyes.
|
|
And the worst of it was that, though you hated Strickland,
|
|
and the exhibition was horrible, it was impossible not to laugh.
|
|
Dirk Stroeve was one of those unlucky persons whose most
|
|
sincere emotions are ridiculous.
|
|
|
|
But after all when I look back upon that winter in Paris,
|
|
my pleasantest recollection is of Dirk Stroeve. There was
|
|
something very charming in his little household. He and his
|
|
wife made a picture which the imagination gratefully dwelt
|
|
upon, and the simplicity of his love for her had a deliberate grace.
|
|
He remained absurd, but the sincerity of his passion
|
|
excited one's sympathy. I could understand how his wife must
|
|
feel for him, and I was glad that her affection was so tender.
|
|
If she had any sense of humour, it must amuse her that he
|
|
should place her on a pedestal and worship her with such an
|
|
honest idolatry, but even while she laughed she must have been
|
|
pleased and touched. He was the constant lover, and though
|
|
she grew old, losing her rounded lines and her fair
|
|
comeliness, to him she would certainly never alter.
|
|
To him she would always be the loveliest woman in the world.
|
|
There was a pleasing grace in the orderliness of their lives.
|
|
They had but the studio, a bedroom, and a tiny kitchen.
|
|
Mrs. Stroeve did all the housework herself; and while Dirk painted
|
|
bad pictures, she went marketing, cooked the luncheon, sewed,
|
|
occupied herself like a busy ant all the day; and in the
|
|
evening sat in the studio, sewing again, while Dirk played
|
|
music which I am sure was far beyond her comprehension.
|
|
He played with taste, but with more feeling than was always
|
|
justified, and into his music poured all his honest,
|
|
sentimental, exuberant soul.
|
|
|
|
Their life in its own way was an idyl, and it managed to
|
|
achieve a singular beauty. The absurdity that clung to
|
|
everything connected with Dirk Stroeve gave it a curious note,
|
|
like an unresolved discord, but made it somehow more modern,
|
|
more human; like a rough joke thrown into a serious scene,
|
|
it heightened the poignancy which all beauty has.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter XXIV
|
|
|
|
|
|
Shortly before Christmas Dirk Stroeve came to ask me to spend
|
|
the holiday with him. He had a characteristic sentimentality
|
|
about the day and wanted to pass it among his friends with
|
|
suitable ceremonies. Neither of us had seen Strickland for
|
|
two or three weeks -- I because I had been busy with friends
|
|
who were spending a little while in Paris, and Stroeve
|
|
because, having quarreled with him more violently than usual,
|
|
he had made up his mind to have nothing more to do with him.
|
|
Strickland was impossible, and he swore never to speak to him again.
|
|
But the season touched him with gentle feeling, and he hated
|
|
the thought of Strickland spending Christmas Day by himself;
|
|
he ascribed his own emotions to him, and could not
|
|
bear that on an occasion given up to good-fellowship the
|
|
lonely painter should be abandoned to his own melancholy.
|
|
Stroeve had set up a Christmas-tree in his studio, and I
|
|
suspected that we should both find absurd little presents
|
|
hanging on its festive branches; but he was shy about seeing
|
|
Strickland again; it was a little humiliating to forgive so
|
|
easily insults so outrageous, and he wished me to be present
|
|
at the reconciliation on which he was determined.
|
|
|
|
We walked together down the Avenue de Clichy, but Strickland
|
|
was not in the cafe. It was too cold to sit outside, and we
|
|
took our places on leather benches within. It was hot and
|
|
stuffy, and the air was gray with smoke. Strickland did not come,
|
|
but presently we saw the French painter who occasionally
|
|
played chess with him. I had formed a casual acquaintance
|
|
with him, and he sat down at our table. Stroeve asked him if
|
|
he had seen Strickland.
|
|
|
|
"He's ill," he said. "Didn't you know?"
|
|
|
|
"Seriously?"
|
|
|
|
"Very, I understand."
|
|
|
|
Stroeve's face grew white.
|
|
|
|
"Why didn't he write and tell me? How stupid of me to quarrel
|
|
with him. We must go to him at once. He can have no one to
|
|
look after him. Where does he live?"
|
|
|
|
"I have no idea," said the Frenchman.
|
|
|
|
We discovered that none of us knew how to find him.
|
|
Stroeve grew more and more distressed.
|
|
|
|
"He might die, and not a soul would know anything about it.
|
|
It's dreadful. I can't bear the thought. We must find him at once."
|
|
|
|
I tried to make Stroeve understand that it was absurd to hunt
|
|
vaguely about Paris. We must first think of some plan.
|
|
|
|
"Yes; but all this time he may be dying, and when we get there
|
|
it may be too late to do anything."
|
|
|
|
"Sit still and let us think," I said impatiently.
|
|
|
|
The only address I knew was the Hotel des Belges, but
|
|
Strickland had long left that, and they would have no
|
|
recollection of him. With that queer idea of his to keep his
|
|
whereabouts secret, it was unlikely that, on leaving, he had
|
|
said where he was going. Besides, it was more than five years ago.
|
|
I felt pretty sure that he had not moved far. If he
|
|
continued to frequent the same cafe as when he had stayed at
|
|
the hotel, it was probably because it was the most convenient.
|
|
Suddenly I remembered that he had got his commission to paint
|
|
a portrait through the baker from whom he bought his bread,
|
|
and it struck me that there one might find his address.
|
|
I called for a directory and looked out the bakers. There were
|
|
five in the immediate neighbourhood, and the only thing was to
|
|
go to all of them. Stroeve accompanied me unwillingly.
|
|
His own plan was to run up and down the streets that led out
|
|
of the Avenue de Clichy and ask at every house if Strickland
|
|
lived there. My commonplace scheme was, after all, effective,
|
|
for in the second shop we asked at the woman behind the
|
|
counter acknowledged that she knew him. She was not certain
|
|
where he lived, but it was in one of the three houses
|
|
opposite. Luck favoured us, and in the first we tried the
|
|
concierge told us that we should find him on the top floor.
|
|
|
|
"It appears that he's ill," said Stroeve.
|
|
|
|
"It may be," answered the concierge indifferently. "<i En
|
|
effet>, I have not seen him for several days."
|
|
|
|
Stroeve ran up the stairs ahead of me, and when I reached the
|
|
top floor I found him talking to a workman in his shirt-sleeves
|
|
who had opened a door at which Stroeve had knocked. He pointed
|
|
to another door. He believed that the person who lived there
|
|
was a painter. He had not seen him for a week. Stroeve made
|
|
as though he were about to knock, and then turned to me with
|
|
a gesture of helplessness. I saw that he was panic-stricken.
|
|
|
|
"Supposing he's dead?"
|
|
|
|
"Not he," I said.
|
|
|
|
I knocked. There was no answer. I tried the handle, and
|
|
found the door unlocked. I walked in, and Stroeve followed me.
|
|
The room was in darkness. I could only see that it was
|
|
an attic, with a sloping roof; and a faint glimmer, no more
|
|
than a less profound obscurity, came from a skylight.
|
|
|
|
"Strickland," I called.
|
|
|
|
There was no answer. It was really rather mysterious, and it
|
|
seemed to me that Stroeve, standing just behind, was trembling
|
|
in his shoes. For a moment I hesitated to strike a light.
|
|
I dimly perceived a bed in the corner, and I wondered whether
|
|
the light would disclose lying on it a dead body.
|
|
|
|
"Haven't you got a match, you fool?"
|
|
|
|
Strickland's voice, coming out of the darkness, harshly,
|
|
made me start.
|
|
|
|
Stroeve cried out.
|
|
|
|
"Oh, my God, I thought you were dead."
|
|
|
|
I struck a match, and looked about for a candle. I had a
|
|
rapid glimpse of a tiny apartment, half room, half studio, in
|
|
which was nothing but a bed, canvases with their faces to the
|
|
wall, an easel, a table, and a chair. There was no carpet on
|
|
the floor. There was no fire-place. On the table, crowded
|
|
with paints, palette-knives, and litter of all kinds, was the
|
|
end of a candle. I lit it. Strickland was lying in the bed,
|
|
uncomfortably because it was too small for him, and he had put
|
|
all his clothes over him for warmth. It was obvious at a
|
|
glance that he was in a high fever. Stroeve, his voice
|
|
cracking with emotion, went up to him.
|
|
|
|
"Oh, my poor friend, what is the matter with you? I had no
|
|
idea you were ill. Why didn't you let me know? You must know
|
|
I'd have done anything in the world for you. Were you
|
|
thinking of what I said? I didn't mean it. I was wrong.
|
|
It was stupid of me to take offence."
|
|
|
|
"Go to hell," said Strickland.
|
|
|
|
"Now, be reasonable. Let me make you comfortable.
|
|
Haven't you anyone to look after you?"
|
|
|
|
He looked round the squalid attic in dismay. He tried to
|
|
arrange the bed-clothes. Strickland, breathing laboriously,
|
|
kept an angry silence. He gave me a resentful glance.
|
|
I stood quite quietly, looking at him.
|
|
|
|
"If you want to do something for me, you can get me some
|
|
milk," he said at last. "I haven't been able to get out for
|
|
two days." There was an empty bottle by the side of the bed,
|
|
which had contained milk, and in a piece of newspaper a few crumbs.
|
|
|
|
"What have you been having?" I asked.
|
|
|
|
"Nothing."
|
|
|
|
"For how long?" cried Stroeve. "Do you mean to say you've had
|
|
nothing to eat or drink for two days? It's horrible."
|
|
|
|
"I've had water."
|
|
|
|
His eyes dwelt for a moment on a large can within reach of an
|
|
outstretched arm.
|
|
|
|
"I'll go immediately," said Stroeve. "Is there anything you fancy?"
|
|
|
|
I suggested that he should get a thermometer, and a few
|
|
grapes, and some bread. Stroeve, glad to make himself useful,
|
|
clattered down the stairs.
|
|
|
|
"Damned fool," muttered Strickland.
|
|
|
|
I felt his pulse. It was beating quickly and feebly. I asked
|
|
him one or two questions, but he would not answer, and when I
|
|
pressed him he turned his face irritably to the wall.
|
|
The only thing was to wait in silence. In ten minutes Stroeve,
|
|
panting, came back. Besides what I had suggested, he brought
|
|
candles, and meat-juice, and a spirit-lamp. He was a
|
|
practical little fellow, and without delay set about making
|
|
bread-and-milk. I took Strickland's temperature. It was a
|
|
hundred and four. He was obviously very ill.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter XXV
|
|
|
|
|
|
Presently we left him. Dirk was going home to dinner, and I
|
|
proposed to find a doctor and bring him to see Strickland;
|
|
but when we got down into the street, fresh after the stuffy
|
|
attic, the Dutchman begged me to go immediately to his studio.
|
|
He had something in mind which he would not tell me, but he
|
|
insisted that it was very necessary for me to accompany him.
|
|
Since I did not think a doctor could at the moment do any more
|
|
than we had done, I consented. We found Blanche Stroeve
|
|
laying the table for dinner. Dirk went up to her, and took
|
|
both her hands.
|
|
|
|
"Dear one, I want you to do something for me," he said.
|
|
|
|
She looked at him with the grave cheerfulness which was one of
|
|
her charms. His red face was shining with sweat, and he had a
|
|
look of comic agitation, but there was in his round, surprised
|
|
eyes an eager light.
|
|
|
|
"Strickland is very ill. He may be dying. He is alone in a
|
|
filthy attic, and there is not a soul to look after him.
|
|
I want you to let me bring him here."
|
|
|
|
She withdrew her hands quickly, I had never seen her make so
|
|
rapid a movement; and her cheeks flushed.
|
|
|
|
"Oh no."
|
|
|
|
"Oh, my dear one, don't refuse. I couldn't bear to leave him
|
|
where he is. I shouldn't sleep a wink for thinking of him."
|
|
|
|
"I have no objection to your nursing him."
|
|
|
|
Her voice was cold and distant.
|
|
|
|
"But he'll die."
|
|
|
|
"Let him."
|
|
|
|
Stroeve gave a little gasp. He wiped his face. He turned to
|
|
me for support, but I did not know what to say.
|
|
|
|
"He's a great artist."
|
|
|
|
"What do I care? I hate him."
|
|
|
|
"Oh, my love, my precious, you don't mean that. I beseech you
|
|
to let me bring him here. We can make him comfortable.
|
|
Perhaps we can save him. He shall be no trouble to you.
|
|
I will do everything. We'll make him up a bed in the studio.
|
|
We can't let him die like a dog. It would be inhuman."
|
|
|
|
"Why can't he go to a hospital?"
|
|
|
|
"A hospital! He needs the care of loving hands. He must be
|
|
treated with infinite tact."
|
|
|
|
I was surprised to see how moved she was. She went on laying
|
|
the table, but her hands trembled.
|
|
|
|
"I have no patience with you. Do you think if you were ill he
|
|
would stir a finger to help you?"
|
|
|
|
"But what does that matter? I should have you to nurse me.
|
|
It wouldn't be necessary. And besides, I'm different;
|
|
I'm not of any importance."
|
|
|
|
"You have no more spirit than a mongrel cur. You lie down on
|
|
the ground and ask people to trample on you."
|
|
|
|
Stroeve gave a little laugh. He thought he understood the
|
|
reason of his wife's attitude.
|
|
|
|
"Oh, my poor dear, you're thinking of that day he came here to
|
|
look at my pictures. What does it matter if he didn't think
|
|
them any good? It was stupid of me to show them to him.
|
|
I dare say they're not very good."
|
|
|
|
He looked round the studio ruefully. On the easel was a
|
|
half-finished picture of a smiling Italian peasant, holding a
|
|
bunch of grapes over the head of a dark-eyed girl.
|
|
|
|
"Even if he didn't like them he should have been civil.
|
|
He needn't have insulted you. He showed that he despised you,
|
|
and you lick his hand. Oh, I hate him."
|
|
|
|
"Dear child, he has genius. You don't think I believe that I
|
|
have it. I wish I had; but I know it when I see it, and I
|
|
honour it with all my heart. It's the most wonderful thing in
|
|
the world. It's a great burden to its possessors. We should
|
|
be very tolerant with them, and very patient."
|
|
|
|
I stood apart, somewhat embarrassed by the domestic scene,
|
|
and wondered why Stroeve had insisted on my coming with him.
|
|
I saw that his wife was on the verge of tears.
|
|
|
|
"But it's not only because he's a genius that I ask you to let
|
|
me bring him here; it's because he's a human being, and he is
|
|
ill and poor."
|
|
|
|
"I will never have him in my house -- never."
|
|
|
|
Stroeve turned to me.
|
|
|
|
"Tell her that it's a matter of life and death.
|
|
It's impossible to leave him in that wretched hole."
|
|
|
|
"It's quite obvious that it would be much easier to nurse him
|
|
here," I said, "but of course it would be very inconvenient.
|
|
I have an idea that someone will have to be with him day and night."
|
|
|
|
"My love, it's not you who would shirk a little trouble."
|
|
|
|
"If he comes here, I shall go," said Mrs. Stroeve violently.
|
|
|
|
"I don't recognize you. You're so good and kind."
|
|
|
|
"Oh, for goodness sake, let me be. You drive me to distraction."
|
|
|
|
Then at last the tears came. She sank into a chair,
|
|
and buried her face in her hands. Her shoulders shook
|
|
convulsively. In a moment Dirk was on his knees beside her,
|
|
with his arms round her, kissing her, calling her all sorts of
|
|
pet names, and the facile tears ran down his own cheeks.
|
|
Presently she released herself and dried her eyes.
|
|
|
|
"Leave me alone," she said, not unkindly; and then to me,
|
|
trying to smile: "What must you think of me?"
|
|
|
|
Stroeve, looking at her with perplexity, hesitated.
|
|
His forehead was all puckered, and his red mouth set in a pout.
|
|
He reminded me oddly of an agitated guinea-pig.
|
|
|
|
"Then it's No, darling?" he said at last.
|
|
|
|
She gave a gesture of lassitude. She was exhausted.
|
|
|
|
"The studio is yours. Everything belongs to you. If you want
|
|
to bring him here, how can I prevent you?"
|
|
|
|
A sudden smile flashed across his round face.
|
|
|
|
"Then you consent? I knew you would. Oh, my precious."
|
|
|
|
Suddenly she pulled herself together. She looked at him with
|
|
haggard eyes. She clasped her hands over her heart as though
|
|
its beating were intolerable.
|
|
|
|
"Oh, Dirk, I've never since we met asked you to do anything for me."
|
|
|
|
"You know there's nothing in the world that I wouldn't do for
|
|
you."
|
|
|
|
"I beg you not to let Strickland come here. Anyone else you like.
|
|
Bring a thief, a drunkard, any outcast off the streets,
|
|
and I promise you I'll do everything I can for them gladly.
|
|
But I beseech you not to bring Strickland here."
|
|
|
|
"But why?"
|
|
|
|
"I'm frightened of him. I don't know why, but there's something
|
|
in him that terrifies me. He'll do us some great harm.
|
|
I know it. I feel it. If you bring him here it can only end badly."
|
|
|
|
"But how unreasonable!"
|
|
|
|
"No, no. I know I'm right. Something terrible will happen to us."
|
|
|
|
"Because we do a good action?"
|
|
|
|
She was panting now, and in her face was a terror which was
|
|
inexplicable. I do not know what she thought. I felt that
|
|
she was possessed by some shapeless dread which robbed her of
|
|
all self-control. As a rule she was so calm; her agitation
|
|
now was amazing. Stroeve looked at her for a while with
|
|
puzzled consternation.
|
|
|
|
"You are my wife; you are dearer to me than anyone in the world.
|
|
No one shall come here without your entire consent."
|
|
|
|
She closed her eyes for a moment, and I thought she was going
|
|
to faint. I was a little impatient with her; I had not
|
|
suspected that she was so neurotic a woman. Then I heard
|
|
Stroeve's voice again. It seemed to break oddly on the
|
|
silence.
|
|
|
|
"Haven't you been in bitter distress once when a helping hand
|
|
was held out to you? You know how much it means. Couldn't you
|
|
like to do someone a good turn when you have the chance?"
|
|
|
|
The words were ordinary enough, and to my mind there was in
|
|
them something so hortatory that I almost smiled. I was
|
|
astonished at the effect they had on Blanche Stroeve.
|
|
She started a little, and gave her husband a long look.
|
|
His eyes were fixed on the ground. I did not know why he
|
|
seemed embarrassed. A faint colour came into her cheeks,
|
|
and then her face became white -- more than white, ghastly;
|
|
you felt that the blood had shrunk away from the whole surface
|
|
of her body; and even her hands were pale. A shiver passed
|
|
through her. The silence of the studio seemed to gather body,
|
|
so that it became an almost palpable presence. I was bewildered.
|
|
|
|
"Bring Strickland here, Dirk. I'll do my best for him."
|
|
|
|
"My precious," he smiled.
|
|
|
|
He wanted to take her in his arms, but she avoided him.
|
|
|
|
"Don't be affectionate before strangers, Dirk," she said.
|
|
"It makes me feel such a fool."
|
|
|
|
Her manner was quite normal again, and no one could have told
|
|
that so shortly before she had been shaken by such a great
|
|
emotion.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter XXVI
|
|
|
|
|
|
Next day we moved Strickland. It needed a good deal of
|
|
firmness and still more patience to induce him to come, but he
|
|
was really too ill to offer any effective resistance to
|
|
Stroeve's entreaties and to my determination. We dressed him,
|
|
while he feebly cursed us, got him downstairs, into a cab, and
|
|
eventually to Stroeve's studio. He was so exhausted by the
|
|
time we arrived that he allowed us to put him to bed without a word.
|
|
He was ill for six weeks. At one time it looked as
|
|
though he could not live more than a few hours, and I am
|
|
convinced that it was only through the Dutchman's doggedness
|
|
that he pulled through. I have never known a more difficult
|
|
patient. It was not that he was exacting and querulous;
|
|
on the contrary, he never complained, he asked for nothing,
|
|
he was perfectly silent; but he seemed to resent the care that
|
|
was taken of him; he received all inquiries about his feelings
|
|
or his needs with a jibe, a sneer, or an oath. I found him
|
|
detestable, and as soon as he was out of danger I had no
|
|
hesitation in telling him so.
|
|
|
|
"Go to hell," he answered briefly.
|
|
|
|
Dirk Stroeve, giving up his work entirely, nursed Strickland
|
|
with tenderness and sympathy. He was dexterous to make him
|
|
comfortable, and he exercised a cunning of which I should
|
|
never have thought him capable to induce him to take the
|
|
medicines prescribed by the doctor. Nothing was too much
|
|
trouble for him. Though his means were adequate to the needs
|
|
of himself and his wife, he certainly had no money to waste;
|
|
but now he was wantonly extravagant in the purchase of
|
|
delicacies, out of season and dear, which might tempt
|
|
Strickland's capricious appetite. I shall never forget the
|
|
tactful patience with which he persuaded him to take nourishment.
|
|
He was never put out by Strickland's rudeness;
|
|
if it was merely sullen, he appeared not to notice it; if it
|
|
was aggressive, he only chuckled. When Strickland, recovering
|
|
somewhat, was in a good humour and amused himself by laughing
|
|
at him, he deliberately did absurd things to excite his ridicule.
|
|
Then he would give me little happy glances, so that
|
|
I might notice in how much better form the patient was.
|
|
Stroeve was sublime.
|
|
|
|
But it was Blanche who most surprised me. She proved herself
|
|
not only a capable, but a devoted nurse. There was nothing in
|
|
her to remind you that she had so vehemently struggled against
|
|
her husband's wish to bring Strickland to the studio.
|
|
She insisted on doing her share of the offices needful to the sick.
|
|
She arranged his bed so that it was possible to change the
|
|
sheet without disturbing him. She washed him. When I
|
|
remarked on her competence, she told me with that pleasant
|
|
little smile of hers that for a while she had worked in a hospital.
|
|
She gave no sign that she hated Strickland so desperately.
|
|
She did not speak to him much, but she was quick to
|
|
forestall his wants. For a fortnight it was necessary that
|
|
someone should stay with him all night, and she took turns at
|
|
watching with her husband. I wondered what she thought during
|
|
the long darkness as she sat by the bedside. Strickland was a
|
|
weird figure as he lay there, thinner than ever, with his
|
|
ragged red beard and his eyes staring feverishly into vacancy;
|
|
his illness seemed to have made them larger, and they had an
|
|
unnatural brightness.
|
|
|
|
"Does he ever talk to you in the night?" I asked her once.
|
|
|
|
"Never."
|
|
|
|
"Do you dislike him as much as you did?"
|
|
|
|
"More, if anything."
|
|
|
|
She looked at me with her calm gray eyes. Her expression was
|
|
so placid, it was hard to believe that she was capable of the
|
|
violent emotion I had witnessed.
|
|
|
|
"Has he ever thanked you for what you do for him?"
|
|
|
|
"No," she smiled.
|
|
|
|
"He's inhuman."
|
|
|
|
"He's abominable."
|
|
|
|
Stroeve was, of course, delighted with her. He could not do
|
|
enough to show his gratitude for the whole-hearted devotion
|
|
with which she had accepted the burden he laid on her.
|
|
But he was a little puzzled by the behaviour of Blanche and
|
|
Strickland towards one another.
|
|
|
|
"Do you know, I've seen them sit there for hours together
|
|
without saying a word?"
|
|
|
|
On one occasion, when Strickland was so much better that in a
|
|
day or two he was to get up, I sat with them in the studio.
|
|
Dirk and I were talking. Mrs. Stroeve sewed, and I thought I
|
|
recognised the shirt she was mending as Strickland's. He lay
|
|
on his back; he did not speak. Once I saw that his eyes were
|
|
fixed on Blanche Stroeve, and there was in them a curious irony.
|
|
Feeling their gaze, she raised her own, and for a moment
|
|
they stared at one another. I could not quite understand
|
|
her expression. Her eyes had in them a strange perplexity,
|
|
and perhaps -- but why? -- alarm. In a moment Strickland
|
|
looked away and idly surveyed the ceiling, but she continued
|
|
to stare at him, and now her look was quite inexplicable.
|
|
|
|
In a few days Strickland began to get up. He was nothing but
|
|
skin and bone. His clothes hung upon him like rags on a
|
|
scarecrow. With his untidy beard and long hair, his features,
|
|
always a little larger than life, now emphasised by illness,
|
|
he had an extraordinary aspect; but it was so odd that it was
|
|
not quite ugly. There was something monumental in his
|
|
ungainliness. I do not know how to express precisely the
|
|
impression he made upon me. It was not exactly spirituality
|
|
that was obvious, though the screen of the flesh seemed almost
|
|
transparent, because there was in his face an outrageous
|
|
sensuality; but, though it sounds nonsense, it seemed as
|
|
though his sensuality were curiously spiritual. There was in
|
|
him something primitive. He seemed to partake of those
|
|
obscure forces of nature which the Greeks personified in
|
|
shapes part human and part beast, the satyr and the faun.
|
|
I thought of Marsyas, whom the god flayed because he had dared
|
|
to rival him in song. Strickland seemed to bear in his heart
|
|
strange harmonies and unadventured patterns, and I foresaw for
|
|
him an end of torture and despair. I had again the feeling
|
|
that he was possessed of a devil; but you could not say that
|
|
it was a devil of evil, for it was a primitive force that
|
|
existed before good and ill.
|
|
|
|
He was still too weak to paint, and he sat in the studio,
|
|
silent, occupied with God knows what dreams, or reading.
|
|
The books he liked were queer; sometimes I would find him poring
|
|
over the poems of Mallarme, and he read them as a child reads,
|
|
forming the words with his lips, and I wondered what strange
|
|
emotion he got from those subtle cadences and obscure phrases;
|
|
and again I found him absorbed in the detective novels of Gaboriau.
|
|
I amused myself by thinking that in his choice of books
|
|
he showed pleasantly the irreconcilable sides of his
|
|
fantastic nature. It was singular to notice that even in the
|
|
weak state of his body he had no thought for its comfort.
|
|
Stroeve liked his ease, and in his studio were a couple of
|
|
heavily upholstered arm-chairs and a large divan.
|
|
Strickland would not go near them, not from any affectation
|
|
of stoicism, for I found him seated on a three-legged stool
|
|
when I went into the studio one day and he was alone,
|
|
but because he did not like them. For choice he sat on a
|
|
kitchen chair without arms. It often exasperated me to see him.
|
|
I never knew a man so entirely indifferent to his surroundings.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter XXVII
|
|
|
|
|
|
Two or three weeks passed. One morning, having come to a
|
|
pause in my work, I thought I would give myself a holiday,
|
|
and I went to the Louvre. I wandered about looking at the
|
|
pictures I knew so well, and let my fancy play idly with the
|
|
emotions they suggested. I sauntered into the long gallery,
|
|
and there suddenly saw Stroeve. I smiled, for his appearance,
|
|
so rotund and yet so startled, could never fail to excite a
|
|
smile, and then as I came nearer I noticed that he seemed
|
|
singularly disconsolate. He looked woebegone and yet
|
|
ridiculous, like a man who has fallen into the water with all
|
|
his clothes on, and, being rescued from death, frightened still,
|
|
feels that he only looks a fool. Turning round, he
|
|
stared at me, but I perceived that he did not see me. His
|
|
round blue eyes looked harassed behind his glasses.
|
|
|
|
"Stroeve," I said.
|
|
|
|
He gave a little start, and then smiled, but his smile was rueful.
|
|
|
|
"Why are you idling in this disgraceful fashion?" I asked gaily.
|
|
|
|
"It's a long time since I was at the Louvre. I thought I'd
|
|
come and see if they had anything new."
|
|
|
|
"But you told me you had to get a picture finished this week."
|
|
|
|
"Strickland's painting in my studio."
|
|
|
|
"Well?"
|
|
|
|
"I suggested it myself. He's not strong enough to go back to
|
|
his own place yet. I thought we could both paint there.
|
|
Lots of fellows in the Quarter share a studio. I thought it
|
|
would be fun. I've always thought it would be jolly to have
|
|
someone to talk to when one was tired of work."
|
|
|
|
He said all this slowly, detaching statement from statement
|
|
with a little awkward silence, and he kept his kind, foolish
|
|
eyes fixed on mine. They were full of tears.
|
|
|
|
"I don't think I understand," I said.
|
|
|
|
"Strickland can't work with anyone else in the studio."
|
|
|
|
"Damn it all, it's your studio. That's his lookout."
|
|
|
|
He looked at me pitifully. His lips were trembling.
|
|
|
|
"What happened?" I asked, rather sharply.
|
|
|
|
He hesitated and flushed. He glanced unhappily at one of the
|
|
pictures on the wall.
|
|
|
|
"He wouldn't let me go on painting. He told me to get out."
|
|
|
|
"But why didn't you tell him to go to hell?"
|
|
|
|
"He turned me out. I couldn't very well struggle with him.
|
|
He threw my hat after me, and locked the door."
|
|
|
|
I was furious with Strickland, and was indignant with myself,
|
|
because Dirk Stroeve cut such an absurd figure that I felt
|
|
inclined to laugh.
|
|
|
|
"But what did your wife say?"
|
|
|
|
"She'd gone out to do the marketing."
|
|
|
|
"Is he going to let her in?"
|
|
|
|
"I don't know."
|
|
|
|
I gazed at Stroeve with perplexity. He stood like a schoolboy
|
|
with whom a master is finding fault.
|
|
|
|
"Shall I get rid of Strickland for you?" I asked.
|
|
|
|
He gave a little start, and his shining face grew very red.
|
|
|
|
"No. You'd better not do anything."
|
|
|
|
He nodded to me and walked away. It was clear that for some
|
|
reason he did not want to discuss the matter. I did not understand.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter XXVIII
|
|
|
|
|
|
The explanation came a week later. It was about ten o' clock
|
|
at night; I had been dining by myself at a restaurant, and
|
|
having returned to my small apartment, was sitting in my
|
|
parlour, reading I heard the cracked tinkling of the bell,
|
|
and, going into the corridor, opened the door. Stroeve stood
|
|
before me.
|
|
|
|
"Can I come in?" he asked.
|
|
|
|
In the dimness of the landing I could not see him very well,
|
|
but there was something in his voice that surprised me. I
|
|
knew he was of abstemious habit or I should have thought he
|
|
had been drinking. I led the way into my sitting room and
|
|
asked him to sit down.
|
|
|
|
"Thank God I've found you," he said.
|
|
|
|
"What's the matter?" I asked in astonishment at his vehemence.
|
|
|
|
I was able now to see him well. As a rule he was neat in his
|
|
person, but now his clothes were in disorder. He looked
|
|
suddenly bedraggled. I was convinced he had been drinking,
|
|
and I smiled. I was on the point of chaffing him on his state.
|
|
|
|
"I didn't know where to go," he burst out. "I came here
|
|
earlier, but you weren't in."
|
|
|
|
"I dined late," I said.
|
|
|
|
I changed my mind: it was not liquor that had driven him to
|
|
this obvious desperation. His face, usually so rosy, was now
|
|
strangely mottled. His hands trembled.
|
|
|
|
"Has anything happened?" I asked.
|
|
|
|
"My wife has left me."
|
|
|
|
He could hardly get the words out. He gave a little gasp, and
|
|
the tears began to trickle down his round cheeks. I did not
|
|
know what to say. My first thought was that she had come to
|
|
the end of her forbearance with his infatuation for
|
|
Strickland, and, goaded by the latter's cynical behaviour, had
|
|
insisted that he should be turned out. I knew her capable of
|
|
temper, for all the calmness of her manner; and if Stroeve
|
|
still refused, she might easily have flung out of the studio
|
|
with vows never to return. But the little man was so
|
|
distressed that I could not smile.
|
|
|
|
"My dear fellow, don't be unhappy. She'll come back.
|
|
You mustn't take very seriously what women say when they're
|
|
in a passion."
|
|
|
|
"You don't understand. She's in love with Strickland."
|
|
|
|
"What!" I was startled at this, but the idea had no sooner
|
|
taken possession of me than I saw it was absurd. "How can you
|
|
be so silly? You don't mean to say you're jealous of Strickland?"
|
|
I almost laughed. "You know very well that she
|
|
can't bear the sight of him."
|
|
|
|
"You don't understand," he moaned.
|
|
|
|
"You're an hysterical ass," I said a little impatiently.
|
|
"Let me give you a whisky-and-soda, and you'll feel better."
|
|
|
|
I supposed that for some reason or other -- and Heaven knows
|
|
what ingenuity men exercise to torment themselves -- Dirk had
|
|
got it into his head that his wife cared for Strickland, and
|
|
with his genius for blundering he might quite well have
|
|
offended her so that, to anger him, perhaps, she had taken
|
|
pains to foster his suspicion.
|
|
|
|
"Look here," I said, "let's go back to your studio. If you've
|
|
made a fool of yourself you must eat humble pie. Your wife
|
|
doesn't strike me as the sort of woman to bear malice."
|
|
|
|
"How can I go back to the studio?" he said wearily.
|
|
"They're there. I've left it to them."
|
|
|
|
"Then it's not your wife who's left you; it's you who've left
|
|
your wife."
|
|
|
|
"For God's sake don't talk to me like that."
|
|
|
|
Still I could not take him seriously. I did not for a moment
|
|
believe what he had told me. But he was in very real distress.
|
|
|
|
"Well, you've come here to talk to me about it. You'd better
|
|
tell me the whole story."
|
|
|
|
"This afternoon I couldn't stand it any more. I went to
|
|
Strickland and told him I thought he was quite well enough to
|
|
go back to his own place. I wanted the studio myself."
|
|
|
|
"No one but Strickland would have needed telling," I said.
|
|
"What did he say?"
|
|
|
|
"He laughed a little; you know how he laughs, not as though he
|
|
were amused, but as though you were a damned fool, and said
|
|
he'd go at once. He began to put his things together.
|
|
You remember I fetched from his room what I thought he needed,
|
|
and he asked Blanche for a piece of paper and some string to
|
|
make a parcel."
|
|
|
|
Stroeve stopped, gasping, and I thought he was going to faint.
|
|
This was not at all the story I had expected him to tell me.
|
|
|
|
"She was very pale, but she brought the paper and the string.
|
|
He didn't say anything. He made the parcel and he whistled a tune.
|
|
He took no notice of either of us. His eyes had an
|
|
ironic smile in them. My heart was like lead. I was afraid
|
|
something was going to happen, and I wished I hadn't spoken.
|
|
He looked round for his hat. Then she spoke:
|
|
|
|
"`I'm going with Strickland, Dirk,' she said. `I can't live
|
|
with you any more.'
|
|
|
|
"I tried to speak, but the words wouldn't come. Strickland
|
|
didn't say anything. He went on whistling as though it had
|
|
nothing to do with him."
|
|
|
|
Stroeve stopped again and mopped his face. I kept quite
|
|
still. I believed him now, and I was astounded. But all the
|
|
same I could not understand.
|
|
|
|
Then he told me, in a trembling voice, with the tears pouring
|
|
down his cheeks, how he had gone up to her, trying to take her
|
|
in his arms, but she had drawn away and begged him not to
|
|
touch her. He implored her not to leave him. He told her how
|
|
passionately he loved her, and reminded her of all the
|
|
devotion he had lavished upon her. He spoke to her of the
|
|
happiness of their life. He was not angry with her. He did
|
|
not reproach her.
|
|
|
|
"Please let me go quietly, Dirk," she said at last. "Don't
|
|
you understand that I love Strickland? Where he goes I shall go."
|
|
|
|
"But you must know that he'll never make you happy. For your
|
|
own sake don't go. You don't know what you've got to look
|
|
forward to."
|
|
|
|
"It's your fault. You insisted on his coming here."
|
|
|
|
He turned to Strickland.
|
|
|
|
"Have mercy on her," he implored him. "You can't let her do
|
|
anything so mad."
|
|
|
|
"She can do as she chooses," said Strickland. "She's not
|
|
forced to come."
|
|
|
|
"My choice is made," she said, in a dull voice.
|
|
|
|
Strickland's injurious calm robbed Stroeve of the rest of his
|
|
self-control. Blind rage seized him, and without knowing what
|
|
he was doing he flung himself on Strickland. Strickland was
|
|
taken by surprise and he staggered, but he was very strong,
|
|
even after his illness, and in a moment, he did not exactly
|
|
know how, Stroeve found himself on the floor.
|
|
|
|
"You funny little man," said Strickland.
|
|
|
|
Stroeve picked himself up. He noticed that his wife had
|
|
remained perfectly still, and to be made ridiculous before her
|
|
increased his humiliation. His spectacles had tumbled off in
|
|
the struggle, and he could not immediately see them.
|
|
She picked them up and silently handed them to him. He seemed
|
|
suddenly to realise his unhappiness, and though he knew he was
|
|
making himself still more absurd, he began to cry. He hid his
|
|
face in his hands. The others watched him without a word.
|
|
They did not move from where they stood.
|
|
|
|
"Oh, my dear," he groaned at last, "how can you be so cruel?"
|
|
|
|
"I can't help myself, Dirk," she answered.
|
|
|
|
"I've worshipped you as no woman was ever worshipped before.
|
|
If in anything I did I displeased you, why didn't you tell me,
|
|
and I'd have changed. I've done everything I could for you."
|
|
|
|
She did not answer. Her face was set, and he saw that he was
|
|
only boring her. She put on a coat and her hat. She moved
|
|
towards the door, and he saw that in a moment she would be
|
|
gone. He went up to her quickly and fell on his knees before
|
|
her, seizing her hands: he abandoned all self-respect.
|
|
|
|
"Oh, don't go, my darling. I can't live without you; I shall
|
|
kill myself. If I've done anything to offend you I beg you to
|
|
forgive me. Give me another chance. I'll try harder still to
|
|
make you happy."
|
|
|
|
"Get up, Dirk. You're making yourself a perfect fool."
|
|
|
|
He staggered to his feet, but still he would not let her go.
|
|
|
|
"Where are you going?" he said hastily. "You don't know what
|
|
Strickland's place is like. You can't live there. It would
|
|
be awful."
|
|
|
|
"If I don't care, I don't see why you should."
|
|
|
|
"Stay a minute longer. I must speak. After all, you can't
|
|
grudge me that."
|
|
|
|
"What is the good? I've made up my mind. Nothing that you can
|
|
say will make me alter it."
|
|
|
|
He gulped, and put his hand to his heart to ease its painful beating.
|
|
|
|
"I'm not going to ask you to change your mind, but I want you
|
|
to listen to me for a minute. It's the last thing I shall
|
|
ever ask you. Don't refuse me that."
|
|
|
|
She paused, looking at him with those reflective eyes of hers,
|
|
which now were so different to him. She came back into the
|
|
studio and leaned against the table.
|
|
|
|
"Well?"
|
|
|
|
Stroeve made a great effort to collect himself.
|
|
|
|
"You must be a little reasonable. You can't live on air,
|
|
you know. Strickland hasn't got a penny."
|
|
|
|
"I know."
|
|
|
|
"You'll suffer the most awful privations. You know why he
|
|
took so long to get well. He was half starved."
|
|
|
|
"I can earn money for him."
|
|
|
|
"How?"
|
|
|
|
"I don't know. I shall find a way."
|
|
|
|
A horrible thought passed through the Dutchman's mind,
|
|
and he shuddered.
|
|
|
|
"I think you must be mad. I don't know what has come over you."
|
|
|
|
She shrugged her shoulders.
|
|
|
|
"Now may I go?"
|
|
|
|
"Wait one second longer."
|
|
|
|
He looked round his studio wearily; he had loved it because
|
|
her presence had made it gay and homelike; he shut his eyes
|
|
for an instant; then he gave her a long look as though to
|
|
impress on his mind the picture of her. He got up and took
|
|
his hat.
|
|
|
|
"No; I'll go."
|
|
|
|
"You?"
|
|
|
|
She was startled. She did not know what he meant.
|
|
|
|
"I can't bear to think of you living in that horrible, filthy
|
|
attic. After all, this is your home just as much as mine.
|
|
You'll be comfortable here. You'll be spared at least the
|
|
worst privations."
|
|
|
|
He went to the drawer in which he kept his money and took out
|
|
several bank-notes.
|
|
|
|
"I would like to give you half what I've got here."
|
|
|
|
He put them on the table. Neither Strickland nor his wife spoke.
|
|
|
|
Then he recollected something else.
|
|
|
|
"Will you pack up my clothes and leave them with the concierge?
|
|
I'll come and fetch them to-morrow." He tried to smile."
|
|
Good-bye, my dear. I'm grateful for all the happiness you gave
|
|
me in the past."
|
|
|
|
He walked out and closed the door behind him. With my mind's
|
|
eye I saw Strickland throw his hat on a table, and, sitting down,
|
|
begin to smoke a cigarette.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter XXIX
|
|
|
|
|
|
I kept silence for a little while, thinking of what Stroeve
|
|
had told me. I could not stomach his weakness, and he saw
|
|
my disapproval. "You know as well as I do how Strickland lived,"
|
|
he said tremulously. "I couldn't let her live in those
|
|
circumstances -- I simply couldn't."
|
|
|
|
"That's your business," I answered.
|
|
|
|
"What would <i you> have done?" he asked.
|
|
|
|
"She went with her eyes open. If she had to put up with
|
|
certain inconveniences it was her own lookout."
|
|
|
|
"Yes; but, you see, you don't love her."
|
|
|
|
"Do you love her still?"
|
|
|
|
"Oh, more than ever. Strickland isn't the man to make a woman happy.
|
|
It can't last. I want her to know that I shall never fail her."
|
|
|
|
"Does that mean that you're prepared to take her back?"
|
|
|
|
"I shouldn't hesitate. Why, she'll want me more than ever then.
|
|
When she's alone and humiliated and broken it would be
|
|
dreadful if she had nowhere to go."
|
|
|
|
He seemed to bear no resentment. I suppose it was commonplace
|
|
in me that I felt slightly outraged at his lack of spirit.
|
|
Perhaps he guessed what was in my mind, for he said:
|
|
|
|
"I couldn't expect her to love me as I loved her.
|
|
I'm a buffoon. I'm not the sort of man that women love.
|
|
I've always known that. I can't blame her if she's fallen
|
|
in love with Strickland."
|
|
|
|
"You certainly have less vanity than any man I've ever known,"
|
|
I said.
|
|
|
|
"I love her so much better than myself. It seems to me that
|
|
when vanity comes into love it can only be because really you
|
|
love yourself best. After all, it constantly happens that a
|
|
man when he's married falls in love with somebody else;
|
|
when he gets over it he returns to his wife, and she takes him
|
|
back, and everyone thinks it very natural. Why should it be
|
|
different with women?"
|
|
|
|
"I dare say that's logical," I smiled, "but most men are made
|
|
differently, and they can't."
|
|
|
|
But while I talked to Stroeve I was puzzling over the
|
|
suddenness of the whole affair. I could not imagine that he
|
|
had had no warning. I remembered the curious look I had seen
|
|
in Blanche Stroeve's eyes; perhaps its explanation was that
|
|
she was growing dimly conscious of a feeling in her heart that
|
|
surprised and alarmed her.
|
|
|
|
"Did you have no suspicion before to-day that there was
|
|
anything between them?" I asked.
|
|
|
|
He did not answer for a while. There was a pencil on the table,
|
|
and unconsciously he drew a head on the blotting-paper.
|
|
|
|
"Please say so, if you hate my asking you questions," I said.
|
|
|
|
"It eases me to talk. Oh, if you knew the frightful anguish
|
|
in my heart." He threw the pencil down. "Yes, I've known it
|
|
for a fortnight. I knew it before she did."
|
|
|
|
"Why on earth didn't you send Strickland packing?"
|
|
|
|
"I couldn't believe it. It seemed so improbable.
|
|
She couldn't bear the sight of him. It was more than improbable;
|
|
it was incredible. I thought it was merely jealousy.
|
|
You see, I've always been jealous, but I trained myself never
|
|
to show it; I was jealous of every man she knew; I was
|
|
jealous of you. I knew she didn't love me as I loved her.
|
|
That was only natural, wasn't it? But she allowed me to
|
|
love her, and that was enough to make me happy. I forced
|
|
myself to go out for hours together in order to leave them
|
|
by themselves; I wanted to punish myself for suspicions
|
|
which were unworthy of me; and when I came back I found they
|
|
didn't want me -- not Strickland, he didn't care if I was
|
|
there or not, but Blanche. She shuddered when I went to kiss her.
|
|
When at last I was certain I didn't know what to do;
|
|
I knew they'd only laugh at me if I made a scene.
|
|
I thought if I held my tongue and pretended not to see,
|
|
everything would come right. I made up my mind to get
|
|
him away quietly, without quarrelling. Oh, if you only
|
|
knew what I've suffered!"
|
|
|
|
Then he told me again of his asking Strickland to go.
|
|
He chose his moment carefully, and tried to make his request
|
|
sound casual; but he could not master the trembling of his voice;
|
|
and he felt himself that into words that he wished to
|
|
seem jovial and friendly there crept the bitterness of his
|
|
jealousy. He had not expected Strickland to take him up on
|
|
the spot and make his preparations to go there and then;
|
|
above all, he had not expected his wife's decision to go with him.
|
|
I saw that now he wished with all his heart that he had held
|
|
his tongue. He preferred the anguish of jealousy to the
|
|
anguish of separation.
|
|
|
|
"I wanted to kill him, and I only made a fool of myself."
|
|
|
|
He was silent for a long time, and then he said what I knew
|
|
was in his mind.
|
|
|
|
"If I'd only waited, perhaps it would have gone all right.
|
|
I shouldn't have been so impatient. Oh, poor child,
|
|
what have I driven her to?"
|
|
|
|
I shrugged my shoulders, but did not speak. I had no sympathy
|
|
for Blanche Stroeve, but knew that it would only pain poor
|
|
Dirk if I told him exactly what I thought of her.
|
|
|
|
He had reached that stage of exhaustion when he could not stop
|
|
talking. He went over again every word of the scene.
|
|
Now something occurred to him that he had not told me before;
|
|
now he discussed what he ought to have said instead of what he
|
|
did say; then he lamented his blindness. He regretted that he had
|
|
done this, and blamed himself that he had omitted the other.
|
|
It grew later and later, and at last I was as tired as he.
|
|
|
|
"What are you going to do now?" I said finally.
|
|
|
|
"What can I do? I shall wait till she sends for me."
|
|
|
|
"Why don't you go away for a bit?"
|
|
|
|
"No, no; I must be at hand when she wants me."
|
|
|
|
For the present he seemed quite lost. He had made no plans.
|
|
When I suggested that he should go to bed he said he could not
|
|
sleep; he wanted to go out and walk about the streets till day.
|
|
He was evidently in no state to be left alone.
|
|
I persuaded him to stay the night with me, and I put him into my
|
|
own bed. I had a divan in my sitting-room, and could very
|
|
well sleep on that. He was by now so worn out that he could
|
|
not resist my firmness. I gave him a sufficient dose of
|
|
veronal to insure his unconsciousness for several hours.
|
|
I thought that was the best service I could render him.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter XXX
|
|
|
|
|
|
But the bed I made up for myself was sufficiently
|
|
uncomfortable to give me a wakeful night, and I thought a good
|
|
deal of what the unlucky Dutchman had told me. I was not so
|
|
much puzzled by Blanche Stroeve's action, for I saw in that
|
|
merely the result of a physical appeal. I do not suppose she
|
|
had ever really cared for her husband, and what I had taken
|
|
for love was no more than the feminine response to caresses
|
|
and comfort which in the minds of most women passes for it.
|
|
It is a passive feeling capable of being roused for any object,
|
|
as the vine can grow on any tree; and the wisdom of
|
|
the world recognises its strength when it urges a girl to
|
|
marry the man who wants her with the assurance that love will follow.
|
|
It is an emotion made up of the satisfaction in security,
|
|
pride of property, the pleasure of being desired,
|
|
the gratification of a household, and it is only by an amiable
|
|
vanity that women ascribe to it spiritual value. It is an
|
|
emotion which is defenceless against passion. I suspected
|
|
that Blanche Stroeve's violent dislike of Strickland had in it
|
|
from the beginning a vague element of sexual attraction.
|
|
Who am I that I should seek to unravel the mysterious intricacies
|
|
of sex? Perhaps Stroeve's passion excited without satisfying
|
|
that part of her nature, and she hated Strickland because she
|
|
felt in him the power to give her what she needed. I think
|
|
she was quite sincere when she struggled against her husband's
|
|
desire to bring him into the studio; I think she was
|
|
frightened of him, though she knew not why; and I remembered
|
|
how she had foreseen disaster. I think in some curious way
|
|
the horror which she felt for him was a transference of the
|
|
horror which she felt for herself because he so strangely
|
|
troubled her. His appearance was wild and uncouth; there was
|
|
aloofness in his eyes and sensuality in his mouth; he was big
|
|
and strong; he gave the impression of untamed passion; and
|
|
perhaps she felt in him, too, that sinister element which had
|
|
made me think of those wild beings of the world's early
|
|
history when matter, retaining its early connection with the
|
|
earth, seemed to possess yet a spirit of its own. If he
|
|
affected her at all, it was inevitable that she should love or
|
|
hate him. She hated him.
|
|
|
|
And then I fancy that the daily intimacy with the sick man
|
|
moved her strangely. She raised his head to give him food,
|
|
and it was heavy against her hand; when she had fed him she
|
|
wiped his sensual mouth and his red beard. She washed his limbs;
|
|
they were covered with thick hair; and when she dried
|
|
his hands, even in his weakness they were strong and sinewy.
|
|
His fingers were long; they were the capable, fashioning
|
|
fingers of the artist; and I know not what troubling thoughts
|
|
they excited in her. He slept very quietly, without a
|
|
movement, so that he might have been dead, and he was like
|
|
some wild creature of the woods, resting after a long chase;
|
|
and she wondered what fancies passed through his dreams.
|
|
Did he dream of the nymph flying through the woods of Greece with
|
|
the satyr in hot pursuit? She fled, swift of foot and
|
|
desperate, but he gained on her step by step, till she felt
|
|
his hot breath on her neck; and still she fled silently, and
|
|
silently he pursued, and when at last he seized her was it
|
|
terror that thrilled her heart or was it ecstasy?
|
|
|
|
Blanche Stroeve was in the cruel grip of appetite.
|
|
Perhaps she hated Strickland still, but she hungered for him,
|
|
and everything that had made up her life till then became of
|
|
no account. She ceased to be a woman, complex, kind and
|
|
petulant, considerate and thoughtless; she was a Maenad.
|
|
She was desire.
|
|
|
|
But perhaps this is very fanciful; and it may be that she was
|
|
merely bored with her husband and went to Strickland out of a
|
|
callous curiosity. She may have had no particular feeling for
|
|
him, but succumbed to his wish from propinquity or idleness,
|
|
to find then that she was powerless in a snare of her own
|
|
contriving. How did I know what were the thoughts and
|
|
emotions behind that placid brow and those cool gray eyes?
|
|
|
|
But if one could be certain of nothing in dealing with
|
|
creatures so incalculable as human beings, there were
|
|
explanations of Blanche Stroeve's behaviour which were at all
|
|
events plausible. On the other hand, I did not understand
|
|
Strickland at all. I racked my brain, but could in no way
|
|
account for an action so contrary to my conception of him.
|
|
It was not strange that he should so heartlessly have betrayed
|
|
his friends' confidence, nor that he hesitated not at all to
|
|
gratify a whim at the cost of another's misery. That was in
|
|
his character. He was a man without any conception of
|
|
gratitude. He had no compassion. The emotions common to most
|
|
of us simply did not exist in him, and it was as absurd to
|
|
blame him for not feeling them as for blaming the tiger
|
|
because he is fierce and cruel. But it was the whim I could
|
|
not understand.
|
|
|
|
I could not believe that Strickland had fallen in love with
|
|
Blanche Stroeve. I did not believe him capable of love.
|
|
That is an emotion in which tenderness is an essential part,
|
|
but Strickland had no tenderness either for himself or for others;
|
|
there is in love a sense of weakness, a desire to protect,
|
|
an eagerness to do good and to give pleasure -- if not
|
|
unselfishness, at all events a selfishness which marvellously
|
|
conceals itself; it has in it a certain diffidence.
|
|
These were not traits which I could imagine in Strickland.
|
|
Love is absorbing; it takes the lover out of himself; the most
|
|
clear-sighted, though he may know, cannot realise that his love
|
|
will cease; it gives body to what he knows is illusion, and,
|
|
knowing it is nothing else, he loves it better than reality.
|
|
It makes a man a little more than himself, and at the same
|
|
time a little less. He ceases to be himself. He is no longer
|
|
an individual, but a thing, an instrument to some purpose
|
|
foreign to his ego. Love is never quite devoid of
|
|
sentimentality, and Strickland was the least inclined to that
|
|
infirmity of any man I have known. I could not believe that
|
|
he would ever suffer that possession of himself which love is;
|
|
he could never endure a foreign yoke. I believed him capable
|
|
of uprooting from his heart, though it might be with agony, so
|
|
that he was left battered and ensanguined, anything that came
|
|
between himself and that uncomprehended craving that urged him
|
|
constantly to he knew not what. If I have succeeded at all in
|
|
giving the complicated impression that Strickland made on me,
|
|
it will not seem outrageous to say that I felt he was at once
|
|
too great and too small for love.
|
|
|
|
But I suppose that everyone's conception of the passion is
|
|
formed on his own idiosyncrasies, and it is different with
|
|
every different person. A man like Strickland would love in a
|
|
manner peculiar to himself. It was vain to seek the analysis
|
|
of his emotion.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter XXXI
|
|
|
|
|
|
Next day, though I pressed him to remain, Stroeve left me.
|
|
I offered to fetch his things from the studio, but he insisted
|
|
on going himself; I think he hoped they had not thought of
|
|
getting them together, so that he would have an opportunity of
|
|
seeing his wife again and perhaps inducing her to come back to him.
|
|
But he found his traps waiting for him in the porter's
|
|
lodge, and the concierge told him that Blanche had gone out.
|
|
I do not think he resisted the temptation of giving her an
|
|
account of his troubles. I found that he was telling them to
|
|
everyone he knew; he expected sympathy, but only excited
|
|
ridicule.
|
|
|
|
He bore himself most unbecomingly. Knowing at what time his
|
|
wife did her shopping, one day, unable any longer to bear not
|
|
seeing her, he waylaid her in the street. She would not speak
|
|
to him, but he insisted on speaking to her. He spluttered out
|
|
words of apology for any wrong he had committed towards her;
|
|
he told her he loved her devotedly and begged her to return to him.
|
|
She would not answer; she walked hurriedly, with averted
|
|
face. I imagined him with his fat little legs trying to keep
|
|
up with her. Panting a little in his haste, he told her how
|
|
miserable he was; he besought her to have mercy on him;
|
|
he promised, if she would forgive him, to do everything she
|
|
wanted. He offered to take her for a journey. He told her
|
|
that Strickland would soon tire of her. When he repeated to
|
|
me the whole sordid little scene I was outraged. He had shown
|
|
neither sense nor dignity. He had omitted nothing that could
|
|
make his wife despise him. There is no cruelty greater than a
|
|
woman's to a man who loves her and whom she does not love;
|
|
she has no kindness then, no tolerance even, she has only an
|
|
insane irritation. Blanche Stroeve stopped suddenly, and as
|
|
hard as she could slapped her husband's face. She took
|
|
advantage of his confusion to escape, and ran up the stairs to
|
|
the studio. No word had passed her lips.
|
|
|
|
When he told me this he put his hand to his cheek as though he
|
|
still felt the smart of the blow, and in his eyes was a pain
|
|
that was heartrending and an amazement that was ludicrous.
|
|
He looked like an overblown schoolboy, and though I felt so sorry
|
|
for him, I could hardly help laughing.
|
|
|
|
Then he took to walking along the street which she must pass
|
|
through to get to the shops, and he would stand at the corner,
|
|
on the other side, as she went along. He dared not speak to
|
|
her again, but sought to put into his round eyes the appeal
|
|
that was in his heart. I suppose he had some idea that the
|
|
sight of his misery would touch her. She never made the
|
|
smallest sign that she saw him. She never even changed the
|
|
hour of her errands or sought an alternative route. I have an
|
|
idea that there was some cruelty in her indifference. Perhaps
|
|
she got enjoyment out of the torture she inflicted.
|
|
I wondered why she hated him so much.
|
|
|
|
I begged Stroeve to behave more wisely. His want of spirit
|
|
was exasperating.
|
|
|
|
"You're doing no good at all by going on like this," I said.
|
|
"I think you'd have been wiser if you'd hit her over the head
|
|
with a stick. She wouldn't have despised you as she does now."
|
|
|
|
I suggested that he should go home for a while. He had often
|
|
spoken to me of the silent town, somewhere up in the north of
|
|
Holland, where his parents still lived. They were poor
|
|
people. His father was a carpenter, and they dwelt in a
|
|
little old red-brick house, neat and clean, by the side of a
|
|
sluggish canal. The streets were wide and empty; for two
|
|
hundred years the place had been dying, but the houses had the
|
|
homely stateliness of their time. Rich merchants, sending
|
|
their wares to the distant Indies, had lived in them calm and
|
|
prosperous lives, and in their decent decay they kept still an
|
|
aroma of their splendid past. You could wander along the
|
|
canal till you came to broad green fields, with windmills here
|
|
and there, in which cattle, black and white, grazed lazily.
|
|
I thought that among those surroundings, with their
|
|
recollections of his boyhood, Dirk Stroeve would forget his
|
|
unhappiness. But he would not go.
|
|
|
|
"I must be here when she needs me," he repeated. "It would be
|
|
dreadful if something terrible happened and I were not at hand."
|
|
|
|
"What do you think is going to happen?" I asked.
|
|
|
|
"I don't know. But I'm afraid."
|
|
|
|
I shrugged my shoulders.
|
|
|
|
For all his pain, Dirk Stroeve remained a ridiculous object.
|
|
He might have excited sympathy if he had grown worn and thin.
|
|
He did nothing of the kind. He remained fat, and his round,
|
|
red cheeks shone like ripe apples. He had great neatness of
|
|
person, and he continued to wear his spruce black coat and his
|
|
bowler hat, always a little too small for him, in a dapper,
|
|
jaunty manner. He was getting something of a paunch, and
|
|
sorrow had no effect on it. He looked more than ever like a
|
|
prosperous bagman. It is hard that a man's exterior should
|
|
tally so little sometimes with his soul. Dirk Stroeve had the
|
|
passion of Romeo in the body of Sir Toby Belch. He had a
|
|
sweet and generous nature, and yet was always blundering;
|
|
a real feeling for what was beautiful and the capacity to create
|
|
only what was commonplace; a peculiar delicacy of sentiment
|
|
and gross manners. He could exercise tact when dealing with
|
|
the affairs of others, but none when dealing with his own.
|
|
What a cruel practical joke old Nature played when she flung
|
|
so many contradictory elements together, and left the man face
|
|
to face with the perplexing callousness of the universe.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter XXXII
|
|
|
|
|
|
I did not see Strickland for several weeks. I was disgusted
|
|
with him, and if I had had an opportunity should have been
|
|
glad to tell him so, but I saw no object in seeking him out
|
|
for the purpose. I am a little shy of any assumption of moral
|
|
indignation; there is always in it an element of self-satisfaction
|
|
which makes it awkward to anyone who has a sense of humour.
|
|
It requires a very lively passion to steel me to
|
|
my own ridicule. There was a sardonic sincerity in Strickland
|
|
which made me sensitive to anything that might suggest a pose.
|
|
|
|
But one evening when I was passing along the Avenue de Clichy
|
|
in front of the cafe which Strickland frequented and which I
|
|
now avoided, I ran straight into him. He was accompanied by
|
|
Blanche Stroeve, and they were just going to Strickland's
|
|
favourite corner.
|
|
|
|
"Where the devil have you been all this time?" said he.
|
|
"I thought you must be away."
|
|
|
|
His cordiality was proof that he knew I had no wish to speak
|
|
to him. He was not a man with whom it was worth while wasting
|
|
politeness.
|
|
|
|
"No," I said; "I haven't been away."
|
|
|
|
"Why haven't you been here?"
|
|
|
|
"There are more cafes in Paris than one, at which to trifle
|
|
away an idle hour."
|
|
|
|
Blanche then held out her hand and bade me good-evening.
|
|
I do not know why I had expected her to be somehow changed;
|
|
she wore the same gray dress that she wore so often, neat and
|
|
becoming, and her brow was as candid, her eyes as untroubled,
|
|
as when I had been used to see her occupied with her household
|
|
duties in the studio.
|
|
|
|
"Come and have a game of chess," said Strickland.
|
|
|
|
I do not know why at the moment I could think of no excuse.
|
|
I followed them rather sulkily to the table at which Strickland
|
|
always sat, and he called for the board and the chessmen.
|
|
They both took the situation so much as a matter of course
|
|
that I felt it absurd to do otherwise. Mrs. Stroeve watched
|
|
the game with inscrutable face. She was silent, but she had
|
|
always been silent. I looked at her mouth for an expression
|
|
that could give me a clue to what she felt; I watched her eyes
|
|
for some tell-tale flash, some hint of dismay or bitterness;
|
|
I scanned her brow for any passing line that might indicate a
|
|
settling emotion. Her face was a mask that told nothing.
|
|
Her hands lay on her lap motionless, one in the other loosely clasped.
|
|
I knew from what I had heard that she was a woman of
|
|
violent passions; and that injurious blow that she had given
|
|
Dirk, the man who had loved her so devotedly, betrayed a
|
|
sudden temper and a horrid cruelty. She had abandoned the
|
|
safe shelter of her husband's protection and the comfortable
|
|
ease of a well-provided establishment for what she could not
|
|
but see was an extreme hazard. It showed an eagerness for
|
|
adventure, a readiness for the hand-to-mouth, which the care
|
|
she took of her home and her love of good housewifery made not
|
|
a little remarkable. She must be a woman of complicated
|
|
character, and there was something dramatic in the contrast of
|
|
that with her demure appearance.
|
|
|
|
I was excited by the encounter, and my fancy worked busily
|
|
while I sought to concentrate myself on the game I was playing.
|
|
I always tried my best to beat Strickland, because
|
|
he was a player who despised the opponent he vanquished;
|
|
his exultation in victory made defeat more difficult to bear.
|
|
On the other hand, if he was beaten he took it with complete
|
|
good-humour. He was a bad winner and a good loser. Those who
|
|
think that a man betrays his character nowhere more clearly
|
|
than when he is playing a game might on this draw subtle
|
|
inferences.
|
|
|
|
When he had finished I called the waiter to pay for the
|
|
drinks, and left them. The meeting had been devoid of
|
|
incident. No word had been said to give me anything to think
|
|
about, and any surmises I might make were unwarranted.
|
|
I was intrigued. I could not tell how they were getting on.
|
|
I would have given much to be a disembodied spirit so that I
|
|
could see them in the privacy of the studio and hear what they
|
|
talked about. I had not the smallest indication on which to
|
|
let my imagination work.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter XXXIII
|
|
|
|
|
|
Two or three days later Dirk Stroeve called on me.
|
|
|
|
"I hear you've seen Blanche," he said.
|
|
|
|
"How on earth did you find out?"
|
|
|
|
"I was told by someone who saw you sitting with them.
|
|
Why didn't you tell me?"
|
|
|
|
"I thought it would only pain you."
|
|
|
|
"What do I care if it does? You must know that I want to hear
|
|
the smallest thing about her."
|
|
|
|
I waited for him to ask me questions.
|
|
|
|
"What does she look like?" he said.
|
|
|
|
"Absolutely unchanged."
|
|
|
|
"Does she seem happy?"
|
|
|
|
I shrugged my shoulders.
|
|
|
|
"How can I tell? We were in a cafe; we were playing chess;
|
|
I had no opportunity to speak to her."
|
|
|
|
"Oh, but couldn't you tell by her face?"
|
|
|
|
I shook my head. I could only repeat that by no word, by no
|
|
hinted gesture, had she given an indication of her feelings.
|
|
He must know better than I how great were her powers of
|
|
self-control. He clasped his hands emotionally.
|
|
|
|
"Oh, I'm so frightened. I know something is going to happen,
|
|
something terrible, and I can do nothing to stop it."
|
|
|
|
"What sort of thing?" I asked.
|
|
|
|
"Oh, I don't know," he moaned, seizing his head with his
|
|
hands. "I foresee some terrible catastrophe."
|
|
|
|
Stroeve had always been excitable, but now he was beside
|
|
himself; there was no reasoning with him. I thought it
|
|
probable enough that Blanche Stroeve would not continue to
|
|
find life with Strickland tolerable, but one of the falsest of
|
|
proverbs is that you must lie on the bed that you have made.
|
|
The experience of life shows that people are constantly doing
|
|
things which must lead to disaster, and yet by some chance
|
|
manage to evade the result of their folly. When Blanche
|
|
quarrelled with Strickland she had only to leave him, and her
|
|
husband was waiting humbly to forgive and forget. I was not
|
|
prepared to feel any great sympathy for her.
|
|
|
|
"You see, you don't love her," said Stroeve.
|
|
|
|
"After all, there's nothing to prove that she is unhappy.
|
|
For all we know they may have settled down into a most
|
|
domestic couple."
|
|
|
|
Stroeve gave me a look with his woeful eyes.
|
|
|
|
"Of course it doesn't much matter to you, but to me it's so
|
|
serious, so intensely serious."
|
|
|
|
I was sorry if I had seemed impatient or flippant.
|
|
|
|
"Will you do something for me?" asked Stroeve.
|
|
|
|
"Willingly."
|
|
|
|
"Will you write to Blanche for me?"
|
|
|
|
"Why can't you write yourself?"
|
|
|
|
"I've written over and over again. I didn't expect her to answer.
|
|
I don't think she reads the letters."
|
|
|
|
"You make no account of feminine curiosity. Do you think she
|
|
could resist?"
|
|
|
|
"She could -- mine."
|
|
|
|
I looked at him quickly. He lowered his eyes. That answer of
|
|
his seemed to me strangely humiliating. He was conscious that
|
|
she regarded him with an indifference so profound that the
|
|
sight of his handwriting would have not the slightest effect
|
|
on her.
|
|
|
|
"Do you really believe that she'll ever come back to you?" I asked.
|
|
|
|
"I want her to know that if the worst comes to the worst she
|
|
can count on me. That's what I want you to tell her."
|
|
|
|
I took a sheet of paper.
|
|
|
|
"What is it exactly you wish me to say?"
|
|
|
|
This is what I wrote:
|
|
|
|
|
|
DEAR MRS. STROEVE, <i Dirk wishes me to tell you that if at
|
|
any time you want him he will be grateful for the opportunity
|
|
of being of service to you. He has no ill-feeling towards you
|
|
on account of anything that has happened. His love for you is
|
|
unaltered. You will always find him at the following
|
|
address:>
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter XXXIV
|
|
|
|
|
|
But though I was no less convinced than Stroeve that the
|
|
connection between Strickland and Blanche would end
|
|
disastrously, I did not expect the issue to take the tragic
|
|
form it did. The summer came, breathless and sultry, and even
|
|
at night there was no coolness to rest one's jaded nerves.
|
|
The sun-baked streets seemed to give back the heat that had
|
|
beat down on them during the day, and the passers-by dragged
|
|
their feet along them wearily. I had not seen Strickland for weeks.
|
|
Occupied with other things, I had ceased to think of
|
|
him and his affairs. Dirk, with his vain lamentations, had
|
|
begun to bore me, and I avoided his society. It was a sordid
|
|
business, and I was not inclined to trouble myself with it further.
|
|
|
|
One morning I was working. I sat in my Pyjamas. My thoughts
|
|
wandered, and I thought of the sunny beaches of Brittany and
|
|
the freshness of the sea. By my side was the empty bowl in
|
|
which the concierge had brought me my <i cafe au lait> and the
|
|
fragment of croissant which I had not had appetite enough to eat.
|
|
I heard the concierge in the next room emptying my bath.
|
|
There was a tinkle at my bell, and I left her to open the door.
|
|
In a moment I heard Stroeve's voice asking if I was in.
|
|
Without moving, I shouted to him to come. He entered the room
|
|
quickly, and came up to the table at which I sat.
|
|
|
|
"She's killed herself," he said hoarsely.
|
|
|
|
"What do you mean?" I cried, startled.
|
|
|
|
He made movements with his lips as though he were speaking,
|
|
but no sound issued from them. He gibbered like an idiot.
|
|
My heart thumped against my ribs, and, I do not know why,
|
|
I flew into a temper.
|
|
|
|
"For God's sake, collect yourself, man," I said. "What on
|
|
earth are you talking about?"
|
|
|
|
He made despairing gestures with his hands, but still no words
|
|
came from his mouth. He might have been struck dumb. I do
|
|
not know what came over me; I took him by the shoulders and
|
|
shook him. Looking back, I am vexed that I made such a fool
|
|
of myself; I suppose the last restless nights had shaken my
|
|
nerves more than I knew.
|
|
|
|
"Let me sit down," he gasped at length.
|
|
|
|
I filled a glass with St. Galmier, and gave it to him
|
|
to drink. I held it to his mouth as though he were a child.
|
|
He gulped down a mouthful, and some of it was spilt on
|
|
his shirt-front.
|
|
|
|
"Who's killed herself?"
|
|
|
|
I do not know why I asked, for I knew whom he meant. He made
|
|
an effort to collect himself.
|
|
|
|
"They had a row last night. He went away."
|
|
|
|
"Is she dead?"
|
|
|
|
"No; they've taken her to the hospital."
|
|
|
|
"Then what are you talking about?" I cried impatiently. "Why
|
|
did you say she'd killed herself?"
|
|
|
|
"Don't be cross with me. I can't tell you anything if you
|
|
talk to me like that."
|
|
|
|
I clenched my hands, seeking to control my irritation.
|
|
I attempted a smile.
|
|
|
|
"I'm sorry. Take your time. Don't hurry, there's a good
|
|
fellow."
|
|
|
|
His round blue eyes behind the spectacles were ghastly with
|
|
terror. The magnifying-glasses he wore distorted them.
|
|
|
|
"When the concierge went up this morning to take a letter she
|
|
could get no answer to her ring. She heard someone groaning.
|
|
The door wasn't locked, and she went in. Blanche was lying on
|
|
the bed. She'd been frightfully sick. There was a bottle of
|
|
oxalic acid on the table."
|
|
|
|
Stroeve hid his face in his hands and swayed backwards and
|
|
forwards, groaning.
|
|
|
|
"Was she conscious?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes. Oh, if you knew how she's suffering! I can't bear it.
|
|
I can't bear it."
|
|
|
|
His voice rose to a shriek.
|
|
|
|
"Damn it all, you haven't got to bear it," I cried impatiently.
|
|
"She's got to bear it."
|
|
|
|
"How can you be so cruel?"
|
|
|
|
"What have you done?"
|
|
|
|
"They sent for a doctor and for me, and they told the police.
|
|
I'd given the concierge twenty francs, and told her to send
|
|
for me if anything happened."
|
|
|
|
He paused a minute, and I saw that what he had to tell me was
|
|
very hard to say.
|
|
|
|
"When I went she wouldn't speak to me. She told them to send
|
|
me away. I swore that I forgave her everything, but she
|
|
wouldn't listen. She tried to beat her head against the wall.
|
|
The doctor told me that I mustn't remain with her. She kept
|
|
on saying, `Send him away!' I went, and waited in the studio.
|
|
And when the ambulance came and they put her on a stretcher,
|
|
they made me go in the kitchen so that she shouldn't know I
|
|
was there."
|
|
|
|
While I dressed -- for Stroeve wished me to go at once with
|
|
him to the hospital -- he told me that he had arranged for his
|
|
wife to have a private room, so that she might at least be
|
|
spared the sordid promiscuity of a ward. On our way he
|
|
explained to me why he desired my presence; if she still
|
|
refused to see him, perhaps she would see me. He begged me to
|
|
repeat to her that he loved her still; he would reproach her
|
|
for nothing, but desired only to help her; he made no claim on
|
|
her, and on her recovery would not seek to induce her to
|
|
return to him; she would be perfectly free.
|
|
|
|
But when we arrived at the hospital, a gaunt, cheerless
|
|
building, the mere sight of which was enough to make one's
|
|
heart sick, and after being directed from this official to
|
|
that, up endless stairs and through long, bare corridors,
|
|
found the doctor in charge of the case, we were told that the
|
|
patient was too ill to see anyone that day. The doctor was a
|
|
little bearded man in white, with an offhand manner.
|
|
He evidently looked upon a case as a case, and anxious relatives
|
|
as a nuisance which must be treated with firmness. Moreover,
|
|
to him the affair was commonplace; it was just an hysterical
|
|
woman who had quarrelled with her lover and taken poison;
|
|
it was constantly happening. At first he thought that Dirk was
|
|
the cause of the disaster, and he was needlessly brusque with him.
|
|
When I explained that he was the husband, anxious to
|
|
forgive, the doctor looked at him suddenly, with curious,
|
|
searching eyes. I seemed to see in them a hint of mockery;
|
|
it was true that Stroeve had the head of the husband who is deceived.
|
|
The doctor faintly shrugged his shoulders.
|
|
|
|
"There is no immediate danger," he said, in answer to our
|
|
questioning. "One doesn't know how much she took. It may be
|
|
that she will get off with a fright. Women are constantly
|
|
trying to commit suicide for love, but generally they take
|
|
care not to succeed. It's generally a gesture to arouse pity
|
|
or terror in their lover."
|
|
|
|
There was in his tone a frigid contempt. It was obvious that
|
|
to him Blanche Stroeve was only a unit to be added to the
|
|
statistical list of attempted suicides in the city of Paris
|
|
during the current year. He was busy, and could waste no more
|
|
time on us. He told us that if we came at a certain hour next
|
|
day, should Blanche be better, it might be possible for her
|
|
husband to see her.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter XXXV
|
|
|
|
|
|
I scarcely know how we got through that day. Stroeve could
|
|
not bear to be alone, and I exhausted myself in efforts to
|
|
distract him. I took him to the Louvre, and he pretended to
|
|
look at pictures, but I saw that his thoughts were constantly
|
|
with his wife. I forced him to eat, and after luncheon I
|
|
induced him to lie down, but he could not sleep. He accepted
|
|
willingly my invitation to remain for a few days in my apartment.
|
|
I gave him books to read, but after a page or two
|
|
he would put the book down and stare miserably into space.
|
|
During the evening we played innumerable games of piquet,
|
|
and bravely, not to disappoint my efforts, he tried to appear
|
|
interested. Finally I gave him a draught, and he sank into
|
|
uneasy slumber.
|
|
|
|
When we went again to the hospital we saw a nursing sister.
|
|
She told us that Blanche seemed a little better, and she went
|
|
in to ask if she would see her husband. We heard voices in
|
|
the room in which she lay, and presently the nurse returned to
|
|
say that the patient refused to see anyone. We had told her
|
|
that if she refused to see Dirk the nurse was to ask if she
|
|
would see me, but this she refused also. Dirk's lips
|
|
trembled.
|
|
|
|
"I dare not insist," said the nurse. "She is too ill.
|
|
Perhaps in a day or two she may change her mind."
|
|
|
|
"Is there anyone else she wants to see?" asked Dirk,
|
|
in a voice so low it was almost a whisper.
|
|
|
|
"She says she only wants to be left in peace."
|
|
|
|
Dirk's hands moved strangely, as though they had nothing to do
|
|
with his body, with a movement of their own.
|
|
|
|
"Will you tell her that if there is anyone else she wishes to
|
|
see I will bring him? I only want her to be happy."
|
|
|
|
The nurse looked at him with her calm, kind eyes, which had
|
|
seen all the horror and pain of the world, and yet, filled
|
|
with the vision of a world without sin, remained serene.
|
|
|
|
"I will tell her when she is a little calmer."
|
|
|
|
Dirk, filled with compassion, begged her to take the message
|
|
at once.
|
|
|
|
"It may cure her. I beseech you to ask her now."
|
|
|
|
With a faint smile of pity, the nurse went back into the room.
|
|
We heard her low voice, and then, in a voice I did not
|
|
recognise the answer:
|
|
|
|
"No. No. No."
|
|
|
|
The nurse came out again and shook her head.
|
|
|
|
"Was that she who spoke then?" I asked. "Her voice sounded
|
|
so strange."
|
|
|
|
"It appears that her vocal cords have been burnt by the acid."
|
|
|
|
Dirk gave a low cry of distress. I asked him to go on and
|
|
wait for me at the entrance, for I wanted to say something to
|
|
the nurse. He did not ask what it was, but went silently. He
|
|
seemed to have lost all power of will; he was like an obedient child.
|
|
|
|
"Has she told you why she did it?" I asked.
|
|
|
|
"No. She won't speak. She lies on her back quite quietly.
|
|
She doesn't move for hours at a time. But she cries always.
|
|
Her pillow is all wet. She's too weak to use a handkerchief,
|
|
and the tears just run down her face."
|
|
|
|
It gave me a sudden wrench of the heart-strings. I could have
|
|
killed Strickland then, and I knew that my voice was trembling
|
|
when I bade the nurse goodbye.
|
|
|
|
I found Dirk waiting for me on the steps. He seemed to see
|
|
nothing, and did not notice that I had joined him till I
|
|
touched him on the arm. We walked along in silence. I tried
|
|
to imagine what had happened to drive the poor creature to
|
|
that dreadful step. I presumed that Strickland knew what had
|
|
happened, for someone must have been to see him from the police,
|
|
and he must have made his statement. I did not know
|
|
where he was. I supposed he had gone back to the shabby attic
|
|
which served him as a studio. It was curious that she should
|
|
not wish to see him. Perhaps she refused to have him sent for
|
|
because she knew he would refuse to come. I wondered what an
|
|
abyss of cruelty she must have looked into that in horror she
|
|
refused to live.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter XXXVI
|
|
|
|
|
|
The next week was dreadful. Stroeve went twice a day to the
|
|
hospital to enquire after his wife, who still declined to see
|
|
him; and came away at first relieved and hopeful because he
|
|
was told that she seemed to be growing better, and then in
|
|
despair because, the complication which the doctor had feared
|
|
having ensued, recovery was impossible. The nurse was pitiful
|
|
to his distress, but she had little to say that could console
|
|
him. The poor woman lay quite still, refusing to speak, with
|
|
her eyes intent, as though she watched for the coming of death.
|
|
It could now be only the question of a day or two;
|
|
and when, late one evening, Stroeve came to see me I knew it was
|
|
to tell me she was dead. He was absolutely exhausted.
|
|
His volubility had left him at last, and he sank down wearily
|
|
on my sofa. I felt that no words of condolence availed, and I
|
|
let him lie there quietly. I feared he would think it
|
|
heartless if I read, so I sat by the window, smoking a pipe,
|
|
till he felt inclined to speak.
|
|
|
|
"You've been very kind to me," he said at last. "Everyone's
|
|
been very kind."
|
|
|
|
"Nonsense," I said, a little embarrassed.
|
|
|
|
"At the hospital they told me I might wait. They gave me a
|
|
chair, and I sat outside the door. When she became
|
|
unconscious they said I might go in. Her mouth and chin were
|
|
all burnt by the acid. It was awful to see her lovely skin
|
|
all wounded. She died very peacefully, so that I didn't know
|
|
she was dead till the sister told me."
|
|
|
|
He was too tired to weep. He lay on his back limply, as
|
|
though all the strength had gone out of his limbs, and
|
|
presently I saw that he had fallen asleep. It was the first
|
|
natural sleep he had had for a week. Nature, sometimes so
|
|
cruel, is sometimes merciful. I covered him and turned down
|
|
the light. In the morning when I awoke he was still asleep.
|
|
He had not moved. His gold-rimmed spectacles were still on
|
|
his nose.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter XXXVII
|
|
|
|
|
|
The circumstances of Blanche Stroeve's death necessitated all
|
|
manner of dreadful formalities, but at last we were allowed to
|
|
bury her. Dirk and I alone followed the hearse to the cemetery.
|
|
We went at a foot-pace, but on the way back we trotted,
|
|
and there was something to my mind singularly horrible in
|
|
the way the driver of the hearse whipped up his horses.
|
|
It seemed to dismiss the dead with a shrug of the shoulders.
|
|
Now and then I caught sight of the swaying hearse in
|
|
front of us, and our own driver urged his pair so that we
|
|
might not remain behind. I felt in myself, too, the desire to
|
|
get the whole thing out of my mind. I was beginning to be
|
|
bored with a tragedy that did not really concern me, and
|
|
pretending to myself that I spoke in order to distract
|
|
Stroeve, I turned with relief to other subjects.
|
|
|
|
"Don't you think you'd better go away for a bit?" I said.
|
|
"There can be no object in your staying in Paris now."
|
|
|
|
He did not answer, but I went on ruthlessly:
|
|
|
|
"Have you made any plans for the immediate future?"
|
|
|
|
"No."
|
|
|
|
"You must try and gather together the threads again.
|
|
Why don't you go down to Italy and start working?"
|
|
|
|
Again he made no reply, but the driver of our carriage came to
|
|
my rescue. Slackening his pace for a moment, he leaned over
|
|
and spoke. I could not hear what he said, so I put my head
|
|
out of the window. he wanted to know where we wished to be
|
|
set down. I told him to wait a minute.
|
|
|
|
"You'd better come and have lunch with me," I said to Dirk.
|
|
"I'll tell him to drop us in the Place Pigalle."
|
|
|
|
"I'd rather not. I want to go to the studio."
|
|
|
|
I hesitated a moment.
|
|
|
|
"Would you like me to come with you?" I asked then.
|
|
|
|
"No; I should prefer to be alone."
|
|
|
|
"All right."
|
|
|
|
I gave the driver the necessary direction, and in renewed
|
|
silence we drove on. Dirk had not been to the studio since
|
|
the wretched morning on which they had taken Blanche to the hospital.
|
|
I was glad he did not want me to accompany him, and when
|
|
I left him at the door I walked away with relief. I took
|
|
a new pleasure in the streets of Paris, and I looked with
|
|
smiling eyes at the people who hurried to and fro. The day
|
|
was fine and sunny, and I felt in myself a more acute delight
|
|
in life. I could not help it; I put Stroeve and his sorrows
|
|
out of my mind. I wanted to enjoy.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter XXXVIII
|
|
|
|
|
|
I did not see him again for nearly a week. Then he fetched me
|
|
soon after seven one evening and took me out to dinner.
|
|
He was dressed in the deepest mourning, and on his bowler was a
|
|
broad black band. He had even a black border to his handkerchief.
|
|
His garb of woe suggested that he had lost in one
|
|
catastrophe every relation he had in the world, even to
|
|
cousins by marriage twice removed. His plumpness and his red,
|
|
fat cheeks made his mourning not a little incongruous. It was
|
|
cruel that his extreme unhappiness should have in it something
|
|
of buffoonery.
|
|
|
|
He told me he had made up his mind to go away, though not to
|
|
Italy, as I had suggested, but to Holland.
|
|
|
|
"I'm starting to-morrow. This is perhaps the last time we
|
|
shall ever meet."
|
|
|
|
I made an appropriate rejoinder, and he smiled wanly.
|
|
|
|
"I haven't been home for five years. I think I'd forgotten it all;
|
|
I seemed to have come so far away from my father's house
|
|
that I was shy at the idea of revisiting it; but now I feel
|
|
it's my only refuge."
|
|
|
|
He was sore and bruised, and his thoughts went back to the
|
|
tenderness of his mother's love. The ridicule he had endured
|
|
for years seemed now to weigh him down, and the final blow of
|
|
Blanche's treachery had robbed him of the resiliency which had
|
|
made him take it so gaily. He could no longer laugh with
|
|
those who laughed at him. He was an outcast. He told me of
|
|
his childhood in the tidy brick house, and of his mother's
|
|
passionate orderliness. Her kitchen was a miracle of clean
|
|
brightness. Everything was always in its place, and no where
|
|
could you see a speck of dust. Cleanliness, indeed, was a
|
|
mania with her. I saw a neat little old woman, with cheeks
|
|
like apples, toiling away from morning to night, through the
|
|
long years, to keep her house trim and spruce. His father was
|
|
a spare old man, his hands gnarled after the work of a
|
|
lifetime, silent and upright; in the evening he read the paper
|
|
aloud, while his wife and daughter (now married to the captain
|
|
of a fishing smack), unwilling to lose a moment, bent over
|
|
their sewing. Nothing ever happened in that little town, left
|
|
behind by the advance of civilisation, and one year followed
|
|
the next till death came, like a friend, to give rest to those
|
|
who had laboured so diligently.
|
|
|
|
"My father wished me to become a carpenter like himself.
|
|
For five generations we've carried on the same trade, from father
|
|
to son. Perhaps that is the wisdom of life, to tread in your
|
|
father's steps, and look neither to the right nor to the left.
|
|
When I was a little boy I said I would marry the daughter of
|
|
the harness-maker who lived next door. She was a little girl
|
|
with blue eyes and a flaxen pigtail. She would have kept my
|
|
house like a new pin, and I should have had a son to carry on
|
|
the business after me."
|
|
|
|
Stroeve sighed a little and was silent. His thoughts dwelt
|
|
among pictures of what might have been, and the safety of the
|
|
life he had refused filled him with longing.
|
|
|
|
"The world is hard and cruel. We are here none knows why,
|
|
and we go none knows whither. We must be very humble. We must
|
|
see the beauty of quietness. We must go through life so
|
|
inconspicuously that Fate does not notice us. And let us seek
|
|
the love of simple, ignorant people. Their ignorance is
|
|
better than all our knowledge. Let us be silent, content in
|
|
our little corner, meek and gentle like them. That is the
|
|
wisdom of life."
|
|
|
|
To me it was his broken spirit that expressed itself, and I
|
|
rebelled against his renunciation. But I kept my own counsel.
|
|
|
|
"What made you think of being a painter?" I asked.
|
|
|
|
He shrugged his shoulders.
|
|
|
|
"It happened that I had a knack for drawing. I got prizes for
|
|
it at school. My poor mother was very proud of my gift,
|
|
and she gave me a box of water-colours as a present. She showed
|
|
my sketches to the pastor and the doctor and the judge.
|
|
And they sent me to Amsterdam to try for a scholarship, and I won
|
|
it. Poor soul, she was so proud; and though it nearly broke
|
|
her heart to part from me, she smiled, and would not show me
|
|
her grief. She was pleased that her son should be an artist.
|
|
They pinched and saved so that I should have enough to live on,
|
|
and when my first picture was exhibited they came to
|
|
Amsterdam to see it, my father and mother and my sister,
|
|
and my mother cried when she looked at it." His kind eyes glistened.
|
|
"And now on every wall of the old house there is one of my
|
|
pictures in a beautiful gold frame."
|
|
|
|
He glowed with happy pride. I thought of those cold scenes of
|
|
his, with their picturesque peasants and cypresses and olive-trees.
|
|
They must look queer in their garish frames on the walls of
|
|
the peasant house.
|
|
|
|
"The dear soul thought she was doing a wonderful thing for me
|
|
when she made me an artist, but perhaps, after all, it would
|
|
have been better for me if my father's will had prevailed and
|
|
I were now but an honest carpenter."
|
|
|
|
"Now that you know what art can offer, would you change your
|
|
life? Would you have missed all the delight it has given you?"
|
|
|
|
"Art is the greatest thing in the world," he answered, after a pause.
|
|
|
|
He looked at me for a minute reflectively; he seemed to hesitate;
|
|
then he said:
|
|
|
|
"Did you know that I had been to see Strickland?"
|
|
|
|
"You?"
|
|
|
|
I was astonished. I should have thought he could not bear to
|
|
set eyes on him. Stroeve smiled faintly.
|
|
|
|
"You know already that I have no proper pride."
|
|
|
|
"What do you mean by that?"
|
|
|
|
He told me a singular story.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter XXXIX
|
|
|
|
|
|
When I left him, after we had buried poor Blanche, Stroeve
|
|
walked into the house with a heavy heart. Something impelled
|
|
him to go to the studio, some obscure desire for self-torture,
|
|
and yet he dreaded the anguish that he foresaw. He dragged
|
|
himself up the stairs; his feet seemed unwilling to carry him;
|
|
and outside the door he lingered for a long time, trying to
|
|
summon up courage to go in. He felt horribly sick. He had an
|
|
impulse to run down the stairs after me and beg me to go in
|
|
with him; he had a feeling that there was somebody in the
|
|
studio. He remembered how often he had waited for a minute or
|
|
two on the landing to get his breath after the ascent, and how
|
|
absurdly his impatience to see Blanche had taken it away again.
|
|
To see her was a delight that never staled, and even
|
|
though he had not been out an hour he was as excited at the
|
|
prospect as if they had been parted for a month. Suddenly he
|
|
could not believe that she was dead. What had happened could
|
|
only be a dream, a frightful dream; and when he turned the key
|
|
and opened the door, he would see her bending slightly over
|
|
the table in the gracious attitude of the woman in Chardin's
|
|
<i Benedicite>, which always seemed to him so exquisite.
|
|
Hurriedly he took the key out of his pocket, opened, and
|
|
walked in.
|
|
|
|
The apartment had no look of desertion. His wife's tidiness
|
|
was one of the traits which had so much pleased him; his own
|
|
upbringing had given him a tender sympathy for the delight in
|
|
orderliness; and when he had seen her instinctive desire to
|
|
put each thing in its appointed place it had given him a
|
|
little warm feeling in his heart. The bedroom looked as
|
|
though she had just left it: the brushes were neatly placed
|
|
on the toilet-table, one on each side of the comb; someone had
|
|
smoothed down the bed on which she had spent her last night in
|
|
the studio; and her nightdress in a little case lay on the pillow.
|
|
It was impossible to believe that she would never come into
|
|
that room again.
|
|
|
|
But he felt thirsty, and went into the kitchen to get himself
|
|
some water. Here, too, was order. On a rack were the plates
|
|
that she had used for dinner on the night of her quarrel with
|
|
Strickland, and they had been carefully washed. The knives
|
|
and forks were put away in a drawer. Under a cover were the
|
|
remains of a piece of cheese, and in a tin box was a crust of
|
|
bread. She had done her marketing from day to day, buying
|
|
only what was strictly needful, so that nothing was left over
|
|
from one day to the next. Stroeve knew from the enquiries
|
|
made by the police that Strickland had walked out of the house
|
|
immediately after dinner, and the fact that Blanche had washed
|
|
up the things as usual gave him a little thrill of horror.
|
|
Her methodicalness made her suicide more deliberate.
|
|
Her self-possession was frightening. A sudden pang seized him,
|
|
and his knees felt so weak that he almost fell. He went back
|
|
into the bedroom and threw himself on the bed. He cried out
|
|
her name.
|
|
|
|
"Blanche. Blanche."
|
|
|
|
The thought of her suffering was intolerable. He had a sudden
|
|
vision of her standing in the kitchen -- it was hardly larger
|
|
than a cupboard -- washing the plates and glasses, the forks
|
|
and spoons, giving the knives a rapid polish on the knife-board;
|
|
and then putting everything away, giving the sink a scrub,
|
|
and hanging the dish-cloth up to dry -- it was there still,
|
|
a gray torn rag; then looking round to see that
|
|
everything was clean and nice. He saw her roll down her
|
|
sleeves and remove her apron -- the apron hung on a peg behind
|
|
the door -- and take the bottle of oxalic acid and go with it
|
|
into the bedroom.
|
|
|
|
The agony of it drove him up from the bed and out of the room.
|
|
He went into the studio. It was dark, for the curtains had
|
|
been drawn over the great window, and he pulled them quickly
|
|
back; but a sob broke from him as with a rapid glance he took
|
|
in the place where he had been so happy. Nothing was changed
|
|
here, either. Strickland was indifferent to his surroundings,
|
|
and he had lived in the other's studio without thinking of
|
|
altering a thing. It was deliberately artistic. It represented
|
|
Stroeve's idea of the proper environment for an artist.
|
|
There were bits of old brocade on the walls, and the piano
|
|
was covered with a piece of silk, beautiful and tarnished;
|
|
in one corner was a copy of the Venus of Milo, and
|
|
in another of the Venus of the Medici. Here and there was an
|
|
Italian cabinet surmounted with Delft, and here and there a
|
|
bas-relief. In a handsome gold frame was a copy of Velasquez'
|
|
Innocent X., that Stroeve had made in Rome, and placed so as
|
|
to make the most of their decorative effect were a number of
|
|
Stroeve's pictures, all in splendid frames. Stroeve had
|
|
always been very proud of his taste. He had never lost his
|
|
appreciation for the romantic atmosphere of a studio, and
|
|
though now the sight of it was like a stab in his heart,
|
|
without thinking what he was at, he changed slightly the
|
|
position of a Louis XV. table which was one of his treasures.
|
|
Suddenly he caught sight of a canvas with its face to the wall.
|
|
It was a much larger one than he himself was in the
|
|
habit of using, and he wondered what it did there. He went
|
|
over to it and leaned it towards him so that he could see the
|
|
painting. It was a nude. His heart began to beat quickly,
|
|
for he guessed at once that it was one of Strickland's
|
|
pictures. He flung it back against the wall angrily -- what
|
|
did he mean by leaving it there? -- but his movement caused it
|
|
to fall, face downwards, on the ground. No mater whose the
|
|
picture, he could not leave it there in the dust, and he
|
|
raised it; but then curiosity got the better of him.
|
|
He thought he would like to have a proper look at it, so he
|
|
brought it along and set it on the easel. Then he stood back
|
|
in order to see it at his ease.
|
|
|
|
He gave a gasp. It was the picture of a woman lying on a sofa,
|
|
with one arm beneath her head and the other along her body;
|
|
one knee was raised, and the other leg was stretched out.
|
|
The pose was classic. Stroeve's head swam. It was Blanche.
|
|
Grief and jealousy and rage seized him, and he cried
|
|
out hoarsely; he was inarticulate; he clenched his fists and
|
|
raised them threateningly at an invisible enemy. He screamed
|
|
at the top of his voice. He was beside himself. He could not
|
|
bear it. That was too much. He looked round wildly for some
|
|
instrument; he wanted to hack the picture to pieces; it should
|
|
not exist another minute. He could see nothing that would
|
|
serve his purpose; he rummaged about his painting things;
|
|
somehow he could not find a thing; he was frantic. At last he
|
|
came upon what he sought, a large scraper, and he pounced on
|
|
it with a cry of triumph. He seized it as though it were a
|
|
dagger, and ran to the picture.
|
|
|
|
As Stroeve told me this he became as excited as when the
|
|
incident occurred, and he took hold of a dinner-knife on the
|
|
table between us, and brandished it. He lifted his arm as
|
|
though to strike, and then, opening his hand, let it fall with
|
|
a clatter to the ground. He looked at me with a tremulous smile.
|
|
He did not speak.
|
|
|
|
"Fire away," I said.
|
|
|
|
"I don't know what happened to me. I was just going to make a
|
|
great hole in the picture, I had my arm all ready for the
|
|
blow, when suddenly I seemed to see it."
|
|
|
|
"See what?"
|
|
|
|
"The picture. It was a work of art. I couldn't touch it.
|
|
I was afraid."
|
|
|
|
Stroeve was silent again, and he stared at me with his mouth
|
|
open and his round blue eyes starting out of his head.
|
|
|
|
"It was a great, a wonderful picture. I was seized with awe.
|
|
I had nearly committed a dreadful crime. I moved a little to
|
|
see it better, and my foot knocked against the scraper.
|
|
I shuddered."
|
|
|
|
I really felt something of the emotion that had caught him.
|
|
I was strangely impressed. It was as though I were suddenly
|
|
transported into a world in which the values were changed.
|
|
I stood by, at a loss, like a stranger in a land where the
|
|
reactions of man to familiar things are all different from
|
|
those he has known. Stroeve tried to talk to me about the
|
|
picture, but he was incoherent, and I had to guess at what he meant.
|
|
Strickland had burst the bonds that hitherto had held him.
|
|
He had found, not himself, as the phrase goes, but a new
|
|
soul with unsuspected powers. It was not only the bold
|
|
simplification of the drawing which showed so rich and so
|
|
singular a personality; it was not only the painting, though
|
|
the flesh was painted with a passionate sensuality which had
|
|
in it something miraculous; it was not only the solidity, so
|
|
that you felt extraordinarily the weight of the body; there
|
|
was also a spirituality, troubling and new, which led the
|
|
imagination along unsuspected ways, and suggested dim empty
|
|
spaces, lit only by the eternal stars, where the soul, all
|
|
naked, adventured fearful to the discovery of new mysteries.
|
|
|
|
If I am rhetorical it is because Stroeve was rhetorical.
|
|
(Do we not know that man in moments of emotion expresses himself
|
|
naturally in the terms of a novelette?) Stroeve was trying to
|
|
express a feeling which he had never known before, and he did
|
|
not know how to put it into common terms. He was like the
|
|
mystic seeking to describe the ineffable. But one fact he
|
|
made clear to me; people talk of beauty lightly, and having no
|
|
feeling for words, they use that one carelessly, so that it
|
|
loses its force; and the thing it stands for, sharing its name
|
|
with a hundred trivial objects, is deprived of dignity.
|
|
They call beautiful a dress, a dog, a sermon; and when they are
|
|
face to face with Beauty cannot recognise it. The false
|
|
emphasis with which they try to deck their worthless thoughts
|
|
blunts their susceptibilities. Like the charlatan who
|
|
counterfeits a spiritual force he has sometimes felt, they
|
|
lose the power they have abused. But Stroeve, the
|
|
unconquerable buffoon, had a love and an understanding of
|
|
beauty which were as honest and sincere as was his own sincere
|
|
and honest soul. It meant to him what God means to the
|
|
believer, and when he saw it he was afraid.
|
|
|
|
"What did you say to Strickland when you saw him?"
|
|
|
|
"I asked him to come with me to Holland."
|
|
|
|
I was dumbfounded. I could only look at Stroeve in stupid amazement.
|
|
|
|
"We both loved Blanche. There would have been room for him in
|
|
my mother's house. I think the company of poor, simple people
|
|
would have done his soul a great good. I think he might have
|
|
learnt from them something that would be very useful to him."
|
|
|
|
"What did he say?"
|
|
|
|
"He smiled a little. I suppose he thought me very silly.
|
|
He said he had other fish to fry."
|
|
|
|
I could have wished that Strickland had used some other phrase
|
|
to indicate his refusal.
|
|
|
|
"He gave me the picture of Blanche."
|
|
|
|
I wondered why Strickland had done that. But I made no
|
|
remark, and for some time we kept silence.
|
|
|
|
"What have you done with all your things?" I said at last.
|
|
|
|
"I got a Jew in, and he gave me a round sum for the lot.
|
|
I'm taking my pictures home with me. Beside them I own nothing
|
|
in the world now but a box of clothes and a few books."
|
|
|
|
"I'm glad you're going home," I said.
|
|
|
|
I felt that his chance was to put all the past behind him.
|
|
I hoped that the grief which now seemed intolerable would be
|
|
softened by the lapse of time, and a merciful forgetfulness
|
|
would help him to take up once more the burden of life.
|
|
He was young still, and in a few years he would look back on all
|
|
his misery with a sadness in which there would be something
|
|
not unpleasurable. Sooner or later he would marry some honest
|
|
soul in Holland, and I felt sure he would be happy. I smiled
|
|
at the thought of the vast number of bad pictures he would
|
|
paint before he died.
|
|
|
|
Next day I saw him off for Amsterdam.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter XL
|
|
|
|
|
|
For the next month, occupied with my own affairs, I saw no one
|
|
connected with this lamentable business, and my mind ceased to
|
|
be occupied with it. But one day, when I was walking along,
|
|
bent on some errand, I passed Charles Strickland. The sight
|
|
of him brought back to me all the horror which I was not
|
|
unwilling to forget, and I felt in me a sudden repulsion for
|
|
the cause of it. Nodding, for it would have been childish to
|
|
cut him, I walked on quickly; but in a minute I felt a hand on
|
|
my shoulder.
|
|
|
|
"You're in a great hurry," he said cordially.
|
|
|
|
It was characteristic of him to display geniality with anyone
|
|
who showed a disinclination to meet him, and the coolness of
|
|
my greeting can have left him in little doubt of that.
|
|
|
|
"I am," I answered briefly.
|
|
|
|
"I'll walk along with you," he said.
|
|
|
|
"Why?" I asked.
|
|
|
|
"For the pleasure of your society."
|
|
|
|
I did not answer, and he walked by my side silently.
|
|
We continued thus for perhaps a quarter of a mile. I began to
|
|
feel a little ridiculous. At last we passed a stationer's,
|
|
and it occurred to me that I might as well buy some paper.
|
|
It would be an excuse to be rid of him.
|
|
|
|
"I'm going in here," I said. "Good-bye."
|
|
|
|
"I'll wait for you."
|
|
|
|
I shrugged my shoulders, and went into the shop. I reflected
|
|
that French paper was bad, and that, foiled of my purpose,
|
|
I need not burden myself with a purchase that I did not need.
|
|
I asked for something I knew could not be provided, and in a
|
|
minute came out into the street.
|
|
|
|
"Did you get what you wanted?" he asked.
|
|
|
|
"No."
|
|
|
|
We walked on in silence, and then came to a place where
|
|
several streets met. I stopped at the curb.
|
|
|
|
"Which way do you go?" I enquired.
|
|
|
|
"Your way," he smiled.
|
|
|
|
"I'm going home."
|
|
|
|
"I'll come along with you and smoke a pipe."
|
|
|
|
"You might wait for an invitation," I retorted frigidly.
|
|
|
|
"I would if I thought there was any chance of getting one."
|
|
|
|
"Do you see that wall in front of you?" I said, pointing.
|
|
|
|
"Yes."
|
|
|
|
"In that case I should have thought you could see also that I
|
|
don't want your company."
|
|
|
|
"I vaguely suspected it, I confess."
|
|
|
|
I could not help a chuckle. It is one of the defects of my
|
|
character that I cannot altogether dislike anyone who makes me laugh.
|
|
But I pulled myself together.
|
|
|
|
"I think you're detestable. You're the most loathsome beast
|
|
that it's ever been my misfortune to meet. Why do you seek
|
|
the society of someone who hates and despises you?"
|
|
|
|
"My dear fellow, what the hell do you suppose I care what you
|
|
think of me?"
|
|
|
|
"Damn it all," I said, more violently because I had an inkling
|
|
my motive was none too creditable, "I don't want to know you."
|
|
|
|
"Are you afraid I shall corrupt you?"
|
|
|
|
His tone made me feel not a little ridiculous. I knew that he
|
|
was looking at me sideways, with a sardonic smile.
|
|
|
|
"I suppose you are hard up," I remarked insolently.
|
|
|
|
"I should be a damned fool if I thought I had any chance of
|
|
borrowing money from you."
|
|
|
|
"You've come down in the world if you can bring yourself to flatter."
|
|
|
|
He grinned.
|
|
|
|
"You'll never really dislike me so long as I give you the
|
|
opportunity to get off a good thing now and then."
|
|
|
|
I had to bite my lip to prevent myself from laughing. What he
|
|
said had a hateful truth in it, and another defect of my
|
|
character is that I enjoy the company of those, however
|
|
depraved, who can give me a Roland for my Oliver. I began to
|
|
feel that my abhorrence for Strickland could only be sustained
|
|
by an effort on my part. I recognised my moral weakness, but
|
|
saw that my disapprobation had in it already something of a pose;
|
|
and I knew that if I felt it, his own keen instinct had
|
|
discovered it, too. He was certainly laughing at me up his sleeve.
|
|
I left him the last word, and sought refuge in a shrug of the
|
|
shoulders and taciturnity.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter XLI
|
|
|
|
|
|
We arrived at the house in which I lived. I would not ask him
|
|
to come in with me, but walked up the stairs without a word.
|
|
He followed me, and entered the apartment on my heels. He had
|
|
not been in it before, but he never gave a glance at the room
|
|
I had been at pains to make pleasing to the eye. There was a
|
|
tin of tobacco on the table, and, taking out his pipe, he
|
|
filled it. He sat down on the only chair that had no arms and
|
|
tilted himself on the back legs.
|
|
|
|
"If you're going to make yourself at home, why don't you sit
|
|
in an arm-chair?" I asked irritably.
|
|
|
|
"Why are you concerned about my comfort?"
|
|
|
|
"I'm not," I retorted, "but only about my own. It makes me
|
|
uncomfortable to see someone sit on an uncomfortable chair."
|
|
|
|
He chuckled, but did not move. He smoked on in silence,
|
|
taking no further notice of me, and apparently was absorbed in
|
|
thought. I wondered why he had come.
|
|
|
|
Until long habit has blunted the sensibility, there is
|
|
something disconcerting to the writer in the instinct which
|
|
causes him to take an interest in the singularities of human
|
|
nature so absorbing that his moral sense is powerless against it.
|
|
He recognises in himself an artistic satisfaction in the
|
|
contemplation of evil which a little startles him;
|
|
but sincerity forces him to confess that the disapproval he feels
|
|
for certain actions is not nearly so strong as his curiosity
|
|
in their reasons. The character of a scoundrel, logical and
|
|
complete, has a fascination for his creator which is an
|
|
outrage to law and order. I expect that Shakespeare devised
|
|
Iago with a gusto which he never knew when, weaving moonbeams
|
|
with his fancy, he imagined Desdemona. It may be that in his
|
|
rogues the writer gratifies instincts deep-rooted in him, which
|
|
the manners and customs of a civilised world have forced back
|
|
to the mysterious recesses of the subconscious. In giving to
|
|
the character of his invention flesh and bones he is giving
|
|
life to that part of himself which finds no other means of
|
|
expression. His satisfaction is a sense of liberation.
|
|
|
|
The writer is more concerned to know than to judge.
|
|
|
|
There was in my soul a perfectly genuine horror of Strickland,
|
|
and side by side with it a cold curiosity to discover his motives.
|
|
I was puzzled by him, and I was eager to see how he
|
|
regarded the tragedy he had caused in the lives of people who
|
|
had used him with so much kindness. I applied the scalpel
|
|
boldly.
|
|
|
|
"Stroeve told me that picture you painted of his wife was the
|
|
best thing you've ever done."
|
|
|
|
Strickland took his pipe out of his mouth, and a smile lit up
|
|
his eyes.
|
|
|
|
"It was great fun to do."
|
|
|
|
"Why did you give it him?"
|
|
|
|
"I'd finished it. It wasn't any good to me."
|
|
|
|
"Do you know that Stroeve nearly destroyed it?"
|
|
|
|
"It wasn't altogether satisfactory."
|
|
|
|
He was quiet for a moment or two, then he took his pipe out of
|
|
his mouth again, and chuckled.
|
|
|
|
"Do you know that the little man came to see me?"
|
|
|
|
"Weren't you rather touched by what he had to say?"
|
|
|
|
"No; I thought it damned silly and sentimental."
|
|
|
|
"I suppose it escaped your memory that you'd ruined his life?"
|
|
I remarked.
|
|
|
|
He rubbed his bearded chin reflectively.
|
|
|
|
"He's a very bad painter."
|
|
|
|
"But a very good man."
|
|
|
|
"And an excellent cook," Strickland added derisively.
|
|
|
|
His callousness was inhuman, and in my indignation I was not
|
|
inclined to mince my words.
|
|
|
|
"As a mere matter of curiosity I wish you'd tell me, have you
|
|
felt the smallest twinge of remorse for Blanche Stroeve's death?"
|
|
|
|
I watched his face for some change of expression, but it
|
|
remained impassive.
|
|
|
|
"Why should I?" he asked.
|
|
|
|
"Let me put the facts before you. You were dying, and Dirk
|
|
Stroeve took you into his own house. He nursed you like a mother.
|
|
He sacrificed his time and his comfort and his money for you.
|
|
He snatched you from the jaws of death."
|
|
|
|
Strickland shrugged his shoulders.
|
|
|
|
"The absurd little man enjoys doing things for other people.
|
|
That's his life."
|
|
|
|
"Granting that you owed him no gratitude, were you obliged to
|
|
go out of your way to take his wife from him? Until you came
|
|
on the scene they were happy. Why couldn't you leave them alone?"
|
|
|
|
"What makes you think they were happy?"
|
|
|
|
"It was evident."
|
|
|
|
"You are a discerning fellow. Do you think she could ever
|
|
have forgiven him for what he did for her?"
|
|
|
|
"What do you mean by that?"
|
|
|
|
"Don't you know why he married her?"
|
|
|
|
I shook my head.
|
|
|
|
"She was a governess in the family of some Roman prince, and
|
|
the son of the house seduced her. She thought he was going to
|
|
marry her. They turned her out into the street neck and crop.
|
|
She was going to have a baby, and she tried to commit suicide.
|
|
Stroeve found her and married her."
|
|
|
|
"It was just like him. I never knew anyone with so
|
|
compassionate a heart."
|
|
|
|
I had often wondered why that ill-assorted pair had married,
|
|
but just that explanation had never occurred to me. That was
|
|
perhaps the cause of the peculiar quality of Dirk's love for
|
|
his wife. I had noticed in it something more than passion.
|
|
I remembered also how I had always fancied that her reserve
|
|
concealed I knew not what; but now I saw in it more than the
|
|
desire to hide a shameful secret. Her tranquillity was like
|
|
the sullen calm that broods over an island which has been
|
|
swept by a hurricane. Her cheerfulness was the cheerfulness
|
|
of despair. Strickland interrupted my reflections with an
|
|
observation the profound cynicism of which startled me.
|
|
|
|
"A woman can forgive a man for the harm he does her," he said,
|
|
"but she can never forgive him for the sacrifices he makes on
|
|
her account."
|
|
|
|
"It must be reassuring to you to know that you certainly run
|
|
no risk of incurring the resentment of the women you come in
|
|
contact with," I retorted.
|
|
|
|
A slight smile broke on his lips.
|
|
|
|
"You are always prepared to sacrifice your principles for a
|
|
repartee," he answered.
|
|
|
|
"What happened to the child?"
|
|
|
|
"Oh, it was still-born, three or four months after they were married."
|
|
|
|
Then I came to the question which had seemed to me most puzzling.
|
|
|
|
"Will you tell me why you bothered about Blanche Stroeve at all?"
|
|
|
|
He did not answer for so long that I nearly repeated it.
|
|
|
|
"How do I know?" he said at last. "She couldn't bear the
|
|
sight of me. It amused me."
|
|
|
|
"I see."
|
|
|
|
He gave a sudden flash of anger.
|
|
|
|
"Damn it all, I wanted her."
|
|
|
|
But he recovered his temper immediately, and looked at me with
|
|
a smile.
|
|
|
|
"At first she was horrified."
|
|
|
|
"Did you tell her?"
|
|
|
|
"There wasn't any need. She knew. I never said a word.
|
|
She was frightened. At last I took her."
|
|
|
|
I do not know what there was in the way he told me this that
|
|
extraordinarily suggested the violence of his desire. It was
|
|
disconcerting and rather horrible. His life was strangely
|
|
divorced from material things, and it was as though his body
|
|
at times wreaked a fearful revenge on his spirit. The satyr
|
|
in him suddenly took possession, and he was powerless in the
|
|
grip of an instinct which had all the strength of the
|
|
primitive forces of nature. It was an obsession so complete
|
|
that there was no room in his soul for prudence or gratitude.
|
|
|
|
"But why did you want to take her away with you?" I asked.
|
|
|
|
"I didn't," he answered, frowning. "When she said she was
|
|
coming I was nearly as surprised as Stroeve. I told her that
|
|
when I'd had enough of her she'd have to go, and she said
|
|
she'd risk that." He paused a little. "She had a wonderful
|
|
body, and I wanted to paint a nude. When I'd finished my
|
|
picture I took no more interest in her."
|
|
|
|
"And she loved you with all her heart."
|
|
|
|
He sprang to his feet and walked up and down the small room.
|
|
|
|
"I don't want love. I haven't time for it. It's weakness.
|
|
I am a man, and sometimes I want a woman. When I've satisfied
|
|
my passion I'm ready for other things. I can't overcome my
|
|
desire, but I hate it; it imprisons my spirit; I look forward
|
|
to the time when I shall be free from all desire and can give
|
|
myself without hindrance to my work. Because women can do
|
|
nothing except love, they've given it a ridiculous importance.
|
|
They want to persuade us that it's the whole of life. It's an
|
|
insignificant part. I know lust. That's normal and healthy.
|
|
Love is a disease. Women are the instruments of my pleasure;
|
|
I have no patience with their claim to be helpmates, partners,
|
|
companions."
|
|
|
|
I had never heard Strickland speak so much at one time.
|
|
He spoke with a passion of indignation. But neither here nor
|
|
elsewhere do I pretend to give his exact words; his vocabulary
|
|
was small, and he had no gift for framing sentences, so that
|
|
one had to piece his meaning together out of interjections,
|
|
the expression of his face, gestures and hackneyed phrases.
|
|
|
|
"You should have lived at a time when women were chattels and
|
|
men the masters of slaves," I said.
|
|
|
|
"It just happens that I am a completely normal man."
|
|
|
|
I could not help laughing at this remark, made in all seriousness;
|
|
but he went on, walking up and down the room like
|
|
a caged beast, intent on expressing what he felt, but found
|
|
such difficulty in putting coherently.
|
|
|
|
"When a woman loves you she's not satisfied until she
|
|
possesses your soul. Because she's weak, she has a rage for
|
|
domination, and nothing less will satisfy her. She has a
|
|
small mind, and she resents the abstract which she is unable
|
|
to grasp. She is occupied with material things, and she is
|
|
jealous of the ideal. The soul of man wanders through the
|
|
uttermost regions of the universe, and she seeks to imprison
|
|
it in the circle of her account-book. Do you remember my wife?
|
|
I saw Blanche little by little trying all her tricks.
|
|
With infinite patience she prepared to snare me and bind me.
|
|
She wanted to bring me down to her level; she cared nothing
|
|
for me, she only wanted me to be hers. She was willing to do
|
|
everything in the world for me except the one thing I wanted:
|
|
to leave me alone."
|
|
|
|
I was silent for a while.
|
|
|
|
"What did you expect her to do when you left her?"
|
|
|
|
"She could have gone back to Stroeve," he said irritably.
|
|
"He was ready to take her."
|
|
|
|
"You're inhuman," I answered. "It's as useless to talk to you
|
|
about these things as to describe colours to a man who was
|
|
born blind."
|
|
|
|
He stopped in front of my chair, and stood looking down at me
|
|
with an expression in which I read a contemptuous amazement.
|
|
|
|
"Do you really care a twopenny damn if Blanche Stroeve is
|
|
alive or dead?"
|
|
|
|
I thought over his question, for I wanted to answer it
|
|
truthfully, at all events to my soul.
|
|
|
|
"It may be a lack of sympathy in myself if it does not make
|
|
any great difference to me that she is dead. Life had a great
|
|
deal to offer her. I think it's terrible that she should have
|
|
been deprived of it in that cruel way, and I am ashamed
|
|
because I do not really care."
|
|
|
|
"You have not the courage of your convictions. Life has no
|
|
value. Blanche Stroeve didn't commit suicide because I left
|
|
her, but because she was a foolish and unbalanced woman.
|
|
But we've talked about her quite enough; she was an entirely
|
|
unimportant person. Come, and I'll show you my pictures."
|
|
|
|
He spoke as though I were a child that needed to be
|
|
distracted. I was sore, but not with him so much as with myself.
|
|
I thought of the happy life that pair had led in the
|
|
cosy studio in Montmartre, Stroeve and his wife, their
|
|
simplicity, kindness, and hospitality; it seemed to me cruel
|
|
that it should have been broken to pieces by a ruthless
|
|
chance; but the cruellest thing of all was that in fact it
|
|
made no great difference. The world went on, and no one was a
|
|
penny the worse for all that wretchedness. I had an idea that
|
|
Dirk, a man of greater emotional reactions than depth of
|
|
feeling, would soon forget; and Blanche's life, begun with who
|
|
knows what bright hopes and what dreams, might just as well
|
|
have never been lived. It all seemed useless and inane.
|
|
|
|
Strickland had found his hat, and stood looking at me.
|
|
|
|
"Are you coming?"
|
|
|
|
"Why do you seek my acquaintance?" I asked him. "You know
|
|
that I hate and despise you."
|
|
|
|
He chuckled good-humouredly.
|
|
|
|
"Your only quarrel with me really is that I don't care a
|
|
twopenny damn what you think about me."
|
|
|
|
I felt my cheeks grow red with sudden anger. It was
|
|
impossible to make him understand that one might be outraged
|
|
by his callous selfishness. I longed to pierce his armour of
|
|
complete indifference. I knew also that in the end there was
|
|
truth in what he said. Unconsciously, perhaps, we treasure
|
|
the power we have over people by their regard for our opinion
|
|
of them, and we hate those upon whom we have no such
|
|
influence. I suppose it is the bitterest wound to human
|
|
pride. But I would not let him see that I was put out.
|
|
|
|
"Is it possible for any man to disregard others entirely?"
|
|
I said, though more to myself than to him. "You're dependent on
|
|
others for everything in existence. It's a preposterous
|
|
attempt to try to live only for yourself and by yourself.
|
|
Sooner or later you'll be ill and tired and old, and then
|
|
you'll crawl back into the herd. Won't you be ashamed when
|
|
you feel in your heart the desire for comfort and sympathy?
|
|
You're trying an impossible thing. Sooner or later the human
|
|
being in you will yearn for the common bonds of humanity."
|
|
|
|
"Come and look at my pictures."
|
|
|
|
"Have you ever thought of death?"
|
|
|
|
"Why should I? It doesn't matter."
|
|
|
|
I stared at him. He stood before me, motionless, with a
|
|
mocking smile in his eyes; but for all that, for a moment I
|
|
had an inkling of a fiery, tortured spirit, aiming at
|
|
something greater than could be conceived by anything that was
|
|
bound up with the flesh. I had a fleeting glimpse of a
|
|
pursuit of the ineffable. I looked at the man before me in
|
|
his shabby clothes, with his great nose and shining eyes, his
|
|
red beard and untidy hair; and I had a strange sensation that
|
|
it was only an envelope, and I was in the presence of a
|
|
disembodied spirit.
|
|
|
|
"Let us go and look at your pictures," I said.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter XLII
|
|
|
|
|
|
I did not know why Strickland had suddenly offered to show
|
|
them to me. I welcomed the opportunity. A man's work reveals him.
|
|
In social intercourse he gives you the surface that he
|
|
wishes the world to accept, and you can only gain a true
|
|
knowledge of him by inferences from little actions, of which
|
|
he is unconscious, and from fleeting expressions, which cross
|
|
his face unknown to him. Sometimes people carry to such
|
|
perfection the mask they have assumed that in due course they
|
|
actually become the person they seem. But in his book or his
|
|
picture the real man delivers himself defenceless.
|
|
His pretentiousness will only expose his vacuity. The lathe
|
|
painted to look like iron is seen to be but a lathe.
|
|
No affectation of peculiarity can conceal a commonplace mind.
|
|
To the acute observer no one can produce the most casual work
|
|
without disclosing the innermost secrets of his soul.
|
|
|
|
As I walked up the endless stairs of the house in which
|
|
Strickland lived, I confess that I was a little excited.
|
|
It seemed to me that I was on the threshold of a surprising
|
|
adventure. I looked about the room with curiosity. It was
|
|
even smaller and more bare than I remembered it. I wondered
|
|
what those friends of mine would say who demanded vast
|
|
studios, and vowed they could not work unless all the
|
|
conditions were to their liking.
|
|
|
|
"You'd better stand there," he said, pointing to a spot from
|
|
which, presumably, he fancied I could see to best advantage
|
|
what he had to show me.
|
|
|
|
"You don't want me to talk, I suppose," I said.
|
|
|
|
"No, blast you; I want you to hold your tongue."
|
|
|
|
He placed a picture on the easel, and let me look at it for a
|
|
minute or two; then took it down and put another in its place.
|
|
I think he showed me about thirty canvases. It was the result
|
|
of the six years during which he had been painting. He had
|
|
never sold a picture. The canvases were of different sizes.
|
|
The smaller were pictures of still-life and the largest were
|
|
landscapes. There were about half a dozen portraits.
|
|
|
|
"That is the lot," he said at last.
|
|
|
|
I wish I could say that I recognised at once their beauty and
|
|
their great originality. Now that I have seen many of them
|
|
again and the rest are familiar to me in reproductions, I am
|
|
astonished that at first sight I was bitterly disappointed.
|
|
I felt nothing of the peculiar thrill which it is the property
|
|
of art to give. The impression that Strickland's pictures
|
|
gave me was disconcerting; and the fact remains, always to
|
|
reproach me, that I never even thought of buying any.
|
|
I missed a wonderful chance. Most of them have found their way
|
|
into museums, and the rest are the treasured possessions of
|
|
wealthy amateurs. I try to find excuses for myself. I think
|
|
that my taste is good, but I am conscious that it has no originality.
|
|
I know very little about painting, and I wander
|
|
along trails that others have blazed for me. At that time I
|
|
had the greatest admiration for the impressionists. I longed
|
|
to possess a Sisley and a Degas, and I worshipped Manet.
|
|
His <i Olympia> seemed to me the greatest picture of modern times,
|
|
and <i Le Dejeuner sur l'Herbe> moved me profoundly.
|
|
These works seemed to me the last word in painting.
|
|
|
|
I will not describe the pictures that Strickland showed me.
|
|
Descriptions of pictures are always dull, and these, besides,
|
|
are familiar to all who take an interest in such things. Now
|
|
that his influence has so enormously affected modern painting,
|
|
now that others have charted the country which he was among
|
|
the first to explore, Strickland's pictures, seen for the
|
|
first time, would find the mind more prepared for them; but it
|
|
must be remembered that I had never seen anything of the sort.
|
|
First of all I was taken aback by what seemed to me the
|
|
clumsiness of his technique. Accustomed to the drawing of the
|
|
old masters, and convinced that Ingres was the greatest
|
|
draughtsman of recent times, I thought that Strickland drew
|
|
very badly. I knew nothing of the simplification at which he aimed.
|
|
I remember a still-life of oranges on a plate, and I
|
|
was bothered because the plate was not round and the oranges
|
|
were lop-sided. The portraits were a little larger than
|
|
life-size, and this gave them an ungainly look. To my eyes the
|
|
faces looked like caricatures. They were painted in a way
|
|
that was entirely new to me. The landscapes puzzled me even more.
|
|
There were two or three pictures of the forest at
|
|
Fontainebleau and several of streets in Paris: my first feeling
|
|
was that they might have been painted by a drunken cabdriver.
|
|
I was perfectly bewildered. The colour seemed to
|
|
me extraordinarily crude. It passed through my mind that the
|
|
whole thing was a stupendous, incomprehensible farce.
|
|
Now that I look back I am more than ever impressed by
|
|
Stroeve's acuteness. He saw from the first that here was a
|
|
revolution in art, and he recognised in its beginnings the
|
|
genius which now all the world allows.
|
|
|
|
But if I was puzzled and disconcerted, I was not unimpressed.
|
|
Even I, in my colossal ignorance, could not but feel that
|
|
here, trying to express itself, was real power. I was excited
|
|
and interested. I felt that these pictures had something to
|
|
say to me that was very important for me to know, but I could
|
|
not tell what it was. They seemed to me ugly, but they
|
|
suggested without disclosing a secret of momentous
|
|
significance. They were strangely tantalising. They gave me
|
|
an emotion that I could not analyse. They said something that
|
|
words were powerless to utter. I fancy that Strickland saw
|
|
vaguely some spiritual meaning in material things that was so
|
|
strange that he could only suggest it with halting symbols.
|
|
It was as though he found in the chaos of the universe a new
|
|
pattern, and were attempting clumsily, with anguish of soul,
|
|
to set it down. I saw a tormented spirit striving for the
|
|
release of expression.
|
|
|
|
I turned to him.
|
|
|
|
"I wonder if you haven't mistaken your medium," I said.
|
|
|
|
"What the hell do you mean?"
|
|
|
|
"I think you're trying to say something, I don't quite know
|
|
what it is, but I'm not sure that the best way of saying it is
|
|
by means of painting."
|
|
|
|
When I imagined that on seeing his pictures I should get a
|
|
clue to the understanding of his strange character I was
|
|
mistaken. They merely increased the astonishment with which
|
|
he filled me. I was more at sea than ever. The only thing
|
|
that seemed clear to me -- and perhaps even this was fanciful
|
|
-- was that he was passionately striving for liberation from
|
|
some power that held him. But what the power was and what
|
|
line the liberation would take remained obscure. Each one of
|
|
us is alone in the world. He is shut in a tower of brass, and
|
|
can communicate with his fellows only by signs, and the signs
|
|
have no common value, so that their sense is vague and uncertain.
|
|
We seek pitifully to convey to others the treasures
|
|
of our heart, but they have not the power to accept them,
|
|
and so we go lonely, side by side but not together,
|
|
unable to know our fellows and unknown by them. We are like
|
|
people living in a country whose language they know so little that,
|
|
with all manner of beautiful and profound things to say,
|
|
they are condemned to the banalities of the conversation manual.
|
|
Their brain is seething with ideas, and they can only
|
|
tell you that the umbrella of the gardener's aunt is in the house.
|
|
|
|
The final impression I received was of a prodigious effort to
|
|
express some state of the soul, and in this effort, I fancied,
|
|
must be sought the explanation of what so utterly perplexed me.
|
|
It was evident that colours and forms had a significance
|
|
for Strickland that was peculiar to himself. He was under an
|
|
intolerable necessity to convey something that he felt, and he
|
|
created them with that intention alone. He did not hesitate
|
|
to simplify or to distort if he could get nearer to that
|
|
unknown thing he sought. Facts were nothing to him, for
|
|
beneath the mass of irrelevant incidents he looked for
|
|
something significant to himself. It was as though he had
|
|
become aware of the soul of the universe and were compelled to
|
|
express it.
|
|
|
|
Though these pictures confused and puzzled me, I could not be
|
|
unmoved by the emotion that was patent in them; and, I knew
|
|
not why, I felt in myself a feeling that with regard to
|
|
Strickland was the last I had ever expected to experience.
|
|
I felt an overwhelming compassion.
|
|
|
|
"I think I know now why you surrendered to your feeling for
|
|
Blanche Stroeve," I said to him.
|
|
|
|
"Why?"
|
|
|
|
"I think your courage failed. The weakness of your body
|
|
communicated itself to your soul. I do not know what infinite
|
|
yearning possesses you, so that you are driven to a perilous,
|
|
lonely search for some goal where you expect to find a final
|
|
release from the spirit that torments you. I see you as the
|
|
eternal pilgrim to some shrine that perhaps does not exist.
|
|
I do not know to what inscrutable Nirvana you aim. Do you know
|
|
yourself? Perhaps it is Truth and Freedom that you seek, and
|
|
for a moment you thought that you might find release in Love.
|
|
I think your tired soul sought rest in a woman's arms, and
|
|
when you found no rest there you hated her. You had no pity
|
|
for her, because you have no pity for yourself. And you
|
|
killed her out of fear, because you trembled still at the
|
|
danger you had barely escaped."
|
|
|
|
He smiled dryly and pulled his beard.
|
|
|
|
"You are a dreadful sentimentalist, my poor friend."
|
|
|
|
A week later I heard by chance that Strickland had gone to
|
|
Marseilles. I never saw him again.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter XLIII
|
|
|
|
|
|
Looking back, I realise that what I have written about Charles
|
|
Strickland must seem very unsatisfactory. I have given
|
|
incidents that came to my knowledge, but they remain obscure
|
|
because I do not know the reasons that led to them.
|
|
The strangest, Strickland's determination to become a painter,
|
|
seems to be arbitrary; and though it must have had causes in
|
|
the circumstances of his life, I am ignorant of them.
|
|
From his own conversation I was able to glean nothing. If I were
|
|
writing a novel, rather than narrating such facts as I know of
|
|
a curious personality, I should have invented much to account
|
|
for this change of heart. I think I should have shown a
|
|
strong vocation in boyhood, crushed by the will of his father
|
|
or sacrificed to the necessity of earning a living; I should
|
|
have pictured him impatient of the restraints of life; and in
|
|
the struggle between his passion for art and the duties of his
|
|
station I could have aroused sympathy for him. I should so
|
|
have made him a more imposing figure. Perhaps it would have
|
|
been possible to see in him a new Prometheus. There was here,
|
|
maybe, the opportunity for a modern version of the hero who for
|
|
the good of mankind exposes himself to the agonies of the damned.
|
|
It is always a moving subject.
|
|
|
|
On the other hand, I might have found his motives in the
|
|
influence of the married relation. There are a dozen ways in
|
|
which this might be managed. A latent gift might reveal
|
|
itself on acquaintance with the painters and writers whose
|
|
society his wife sought; or domestic incompatability might turn
|
|
him upon himself; a love affair might fan into bright flame
|
|
a fire which I could have shown smouldering dimly in his heart.
|
|
I think then I should have drawn Mrs. Strickland quite
|
|
differently. I should have abandoned the facts and made her a
|
|
nagging, tiresome woman, or else a bigoted one with no
|
|
sympathy for the claims of the spirit. I should have made
|
|
Strickland's marriage a long torment from which escape was the
|
|
only possible issue. I think I should have emphasised his
|
|
patience with the unsuitable mate, and the compassion which
|
|
made him unwilling to throw off the yoke that oppressed him.
|
|
I should certainly have eliminated the children.
|
|
|
|
An effective story might also have been made by bringing him
|
|
into contact with some old painter whom the pressure of want
|
|
or the desire for commercial success had made false to the
|
|
genius of his youth, and who, seeing in Strickland the
|
|
possibilities which himself had wasted, influenced him to
|
|
forsake all and follow the divine tyranny of art. I think
|
|
there would have been something ironic in the picture of the
|
|
successful old man, rich and honoured, living in another the
|
|
life which he, though knowing it was the better part, had not
|
|
had the strength to pursue.
|
|
|
|
The facts are much duller. Strickland, a boy fresh from school,
|
|
went into a broker's office without any feeling of distaste.
|
|
Until he married he led the ordinary life of his fellows,
|
|
gambling mildly on the Exchange, interested to the extent
|
|
of a sovereign or two on the result of the Derby or the
|
|
Oxford and Cambridge Race. I think he boxed a little in his
|
|
spare time. On his chimney-piece he had photographs of Mrs.
|
|
Langtry and Mary Anderson. He read <i Punch> and the <i
|
|
Sporting Times>. He went to dances in Hampstead.
|
|
|
|
It matters less that for so long I should have lost sight of him.
|
|
The years during which he was struggling to acquire
|
|
proficiency in a difficult art were monotonous, and I do not
|
|
know that there was anything significant in the shifts to
|
|
which he was put to earn enough money to keep him. An account
|
|
of them would be an account of the things he had seen happen
|
|
to other people. I do not think they had any effect on his
|
|
own character. He must have acquired experiences which would
|
|
form abundant material for a picaresque novel of modern Paris,
|
|
but he remained aloof, and judging from his conversation there
|
|
was nothing in those years that had made a particular
|
|
impression on him. Perhaps when he went to Paris he was too
|
|
old to fall a victim to the glamour of his environment.
|
|
Strange as it may seem, he always appeared to me not only
|
|
practical, but immensely matter-of-fact. I suppose his life
|
|
during this period was romantic, but he certainly saw no
|
|
romance in it. It may be that in order to realise the romance
|
|
of life you must have something of the actor in you; and,
|
|
capable of standing outside yourself, you must be able to
|
|
watch your actions with an interest at once detached and
|
|
absorbed. But no one was more single-minded than Strickland.
|
|
I never knew anyone who was less self-conscious. But it is
|
|
unfortunate that I can give no description of the arduous
|
|
steps by which he reached such mastery over his art as he ever
|
|
acquired; for if I could show him undaunted by failure, by an
|
|
unceasing effort of courage holding despair at bay, doggedly
|
|
persistent in the face of self-doubt, which is the artist's
|
|
bitterest enemy, I might excite some sympathy for a
|
|
personality which, I am all too conscious, must appear
|
|
singularly devoid of charm. But I have nothing to go on.
|
|
I never once saw Strickland at work, nor do I know that anyone
|
|
else did. He kept the secret of his struggles to himself.
|
|
If in the loneliness of his studio he wrestled desperately with
|
|
the Angel of the Lord he never allowed a soul to divine his
|
|
anguish.
|
|
|
|
When I come to his connection with Blanche Stroeve I am
|
|
exasperated by the fragmentariness of the facts at my disposal.
|
|
To give my story coherence I should describe the
|
|
progress of their tragic union, but I know nothing of the
|
|
three months during which they lived together. I do not know
|
|
how they got on or what they talked about. After all, there
|
|
are twenty-four hours in the day, and the summits of emotion
|
|
can only be reached at rare intervals. I can only imagine how
|
|
they passed the rest of the time. While the light lasted and
|
|
so long as Blanche's strength endured, I suppose that
|
|
Strickland painted, and it must have irritated her when she
|
|
saw him absorbed in his work. As a mistress she did not then
|
|
exist for him, but only as a model; and then there were long
|
|
hours in which they lived side by side in silence. It must
|
|
have frightened her. When Strickland suggested that in her
|
|
surrender to him there was a sense of triumph over Dirk Stroeve,
|
|
because he had come to her help in her extremity, he opened
|
|
the door to many a dark conjecture. I hope it was not true.
|
|
It seems to me rather horrible. But who can fathom the
|
|
subtleties of the human heart? Certainly not those who expect
|
|
from it only decorous sentiments and normal emotions.
|
|
When Blanche saw that, notwithstanding his moments of passion,
|
|
Strickland remained aloof, she must have been filled with
|
|
dismay, and even in those moments I surmise that she realised
|
|
that to him she was not an individual, but an instrument of
|
|
pleasure; he was a stranger still, and she tried to bind him
|
|
to herself with pathetic arts. She strove to ensnare him with
|
|
comfort and would not see that comfort meant nothing to him.
|
|
She was at pains to get him the things to eat that he liked,
|
|
and would not see that he was indifferent to food. She was
|
|
afraid to leave him alone. She pursued him with attentions,
|
|
and when his passion was dormant sought to excite it, for then
|
|
at least she had the illusion of holding him. Perhaps she
|
|
knew with her intelligence that the chains she forged only
|
|
aroused his instinct of destruction, as the plate-glass window
|
|
makes your fingers itch for half a brick; but her heart,
|
|
incapable of reason, made her continue on a course she knew
|
|
was fatal. She must have been very unhappy. But the
|
|
blindness of love led her to believe what she wanted to be
|
|
true, and her love was so great that it seemed impossible to
|
|
her that it should not in return awake an equal love.
|
|
|
|
But my study of Strickland's character suffers from a greater
|
|
defect than my ignorance of many facts. Because they were
|
|
obvious and striking, I have written of his relations to
|
|
women; and yet they were but an insignificant part of his life.
|
|
It is an irony that they should so tragically have
|
|
affected others. His real life consisted of dreams and of
|
|
tremendously hard work.
|
|
|
|
Here lies the unreality of fiction. For in men, as a rule,
|
|
love is but an episode which takes its place among the other
|
|
affairs of the day, and the emphasis laid on it in novels
|
|
gives it an importance which is untrue to life. There are few
|
|
men to whom it is the most important thing in the world, and
|
|
they are not very interesting ones; even women, with whom the
|
|
subject is of paramount interest, have a contempt for them.
|
|
They are flattered and excited by them, but have an uneasy
|
|
feeling that they are poor creatures. But even during the
|
|
brief intervals in which they are in love, men do other things
|
|
which distract their mind; the trades by which they earn their
|
|
living engage their attention; they are absorbed in sport;
|
|
they can interest themselves in art. For the most part, they
|
|
keep their various activities in various compartments, and
|
|
they can pursue one to the temporary exclusion of the other.
|
|
They have a faculty of concentration on that which occupies
|
|
them at the moment, and it irks them if one encroaches on the
|
|
other. As lovers, the difference between men and women is
|
|
that women can love all day long, but men only at times.
|
|
|
|
With Strickland the sexual appetite took a very small place.
|
|
It was unimportant. It was irksome. His soul aimed elsewhither.
|
|
He had violent passions, and on occasion desire seized
|
|
his body so that he was driven to an orgy of lust, but
|
|
he hated the instincts that robbed him of his self-possession.
|
|
I think, even, he hated the inevitable partner in his debauchery.
|
|
When he had regained command over himself, he
|
|
shuddered at the sight of the woman he had enjoyed.
|
|
His thoughts floated then serenely in the empyrean, and he felt
|
|
towards her the horror that perhaps the painted butterfly,
|
|
hovering about the flowers, feels to the filthy chrysalis from
|
|
which it has triumphantly emerged. I suppose that art is a
|
|
manifestation of the sexual instinct. It is the same emotion
|
|
which is excited in the human heart by the sight of a lovely
|
|
woman, the Bay of Naples under the yellow moon, and the
|
|
<i Entombment> of Titian. It is possible that Strickland hated
|
|
the normal release of sex because it seemed to him brutal by
|
|
comparison with the satisfaction of artistic creation.
|
|
It seems strange even to myself, when I have described a man who
|
|
was cruel, selfish, brutal and sensual, to say that he was a
|
|
great idealist. The fact remains.
|
|
|
|
He lived more poorly than an artisan. He worked harder.
|
|
He cared nothing for those things which with most people make
|
|
life gracious and beautiful. He was indifferent to money.
|
|
He cared nothing about fame. You cannot praise him because he
|
|
resisted the temptation to make any of those compromises with
|
|
the world which most of us yield to. He had no such temptation.
|
|
It never entered his head that compromise was possible.
|
|
He lived in Paris more lonely than an anchorite in the
|
|
deserts of Thebes. He asked nothing his fellows except
|
|
that they should leave him alone. He was single-hearted in
|
|
his aim, and to pursue it he was willing to sacrifice not only
|
|
himself -- many can do that -- but others. He had a vision.
|
|
|
|
Strickland was an odious man, but I still think be was a great one.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter XLIV
|
|
|
|
|
|
A certain importance attaches to the views on art of painters,
|
|
and this is the natural place for me to set down what I know
|
|
of Strickland's opinions of the great artists of the past.
|
|
I am afraid I have very little worth noting. Strickland was not
|
|
a conversationalist, and he had no gift for putting what he
|
|
had to say in the striking phrase that the listener remembers.
|
|
He had no wit. His humour, as will be seen if I have in any
|
|
way succeeded in reproducing the manner of his conversation,
|
|
was sardonic. His repartee was rude. He made one laugh
|
|
sometimes by speaking the truth, but this is a form of humour
|
|
which gains its force only by its unusualness; it would cease
|
|
to amuse if it were commonly practised.
|
|
|
|
Strickland was not, I should say, a man of great intelligence,
|
|
and his views on painting were by no means out of the ordinary.
|
|
I never heard him speak of those whose work had a certain
|
|
analogy with his own -- of Cezanne, for instance, or of Van Gogh;
|
|
and I doubt very much if he had ever seen their pictures.
|
|
He was not greatly interested in the Impressionists.
|
|
Their technique impressed him, but I fancy that
|
|
he thought their attitude commonplace. When Stroeve was
|
|
holding forth at length on the excellence of Monet, he said:
|
|
"I prefer Winterhalter." But I dare say he said it to annoy,
|
|
and if he did he certainly succeeded.
|
|
|
|
I am disappointed that I cannot report any extravagances in
|
|
his opinions on the old masters. There is so much in his
|
|
character which is strange that I feel it would complete the
|
|
picture if his views were outrageous. I feel the need to
|
|
ascribe to him fantastic theories about his predecessors, and
|
|
it is with a certain sense of disillusion that I confess he
|
|
thought about them pretty much as does everybody else.
|
|
I do not believe he knew El Greco. He had a great but somewhat
|
|
impatient admiration for Velasquez. Chardin delighted him,
|
|
and Rembrandt moved him to ecstasy. He described the
|
|
impression that Rembrandt made on him with a coarseness I
|
|
cannot repeat. The only painter that interested him who was
|
|
at all unexpected was Brueghel the Elder. I knew very little
|
|
about him at that time, and Strickland had no power to explain
|
|
himself. I remember what he said about him because it was so
|
|
unsatisfactory.
|
|
|
|
"He's all right," said Strickland. "I bet he found it hell to paint."
|
|
|
|
When later, in Vienna, I saw several of Peter Brueghel's
|
|
pictures, I thought I understood why he had attracted
|
|
Strickland's attention. Here, too, was a man with a vision of
|
|
the world peculiar to himself. I made somewhat copious notes
|
|
at the time, intending to write something about him, but I
|
|
have lost them, and have now only the recollection of an emotion.
|
|
He seemed to see his fellow-creatures grotesquely,
|
|
and he was angry with them because they were grotesque;
|
|
life was a confusion of ridiculous, sordid happenings, a fit
|
|
subject for laughter, and yet it made him sorrowful to laugh.
|
|
Brueghel gave me the impression of a man striving to express
|
|
in one medium feelings more appropriate to expression in another,
|
|
and it may be that it was the obscure consciousness of this
|
|
that excited Strickland's sympathy. Perhaps both were trying
|
|
to put down in paint ideas which were more suitable to literature.
|
|
|
|
Strickland at this time must have been nearly forty-seven.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter XLV
|
|
|
|
|
|
I have said already that but for the hazard of a journey to
|
|
Tahiti I should doubtless never have written this book. It is
|
|
thither that after many wanderings Charles Strickland came,
|
|
and it is there that he painted the pictures on which his fame
|
|
most securely rests. I suppose no artist achieves completely
|
|
the realisation of the dream that obsesses him, and Strickland,
|
|
harassed incessantly by his struggle with technique,
|
|
managed, perhaps, less than others to express the vision
|
|
that he saw with his mind's eye; but in Tahiti the
|
|
circumstances were favourable to him; he found in his
|
|
surroundings the accidents necessary for his inspiration to
|
|
become effective, and his later pictures give at least a
|
|
suggestion of what he sought. They offer the imagination
|
|
something new and strange. It is as though in this far
|
|
country his spirit, that had wandered disembodied, seeking a
|
|
tenement, at last was able to clothe itself in flesh. To use
|
|
the hackneyed phrase, here he found himself.
|
|
|
|
It would seem that my visit to this remote island should
|
|
immediately revive my interest in Strickland, but the work I
|
|
was engaged in occupied my attention to the exclusion of
|
|
something that was irrelevant, and it was not till I had been
|
|
there some days that I even remembered his connection with it.
|
|
After all, I had not seen him for fifteen years, and it was
|
|
nine since he died. But I think my arrival at Tahiti would
|
|
have driven out of my head matters of much more immediate
|
|
importance to me, and even after a week I found it not easy to
|
|
order myself soberly. I remember that on my first morning I
|
|
awoke early, and when I came on to the terrace of the hotel no
|
|
one was stirring. I wandered round to the kitchen, but it was
|
|
locked, and on a bench outside it a native boy was sleeping.
|
|
There seemed no chance of breakfast for some time, so I
|
|
sauntered down to the water-front. The Chinamen were already
|
|
busy in their shops. The sky had still the pallor of dawn,
|
|
and there was a ghostly silence on the lagoon. Ten miles away
|
|
the island of Murea, like some high fastness of the Holy
|
|
Grail, guarded its mystery.
|
|
|
|
I did not altogether believe my eyes. The days that had
|
|
passed since I left Wellington seemed extraordinary and
|
|
unusual. Wellington is trim and neat and English; it reminds
|
|
you of a seaport town on the South Coast. And for three days
|
|
afterwards the sea was stormy. Gray clouds chased one another
|
|
across the sky. Then the wind dropped, and the sea was calm
|
|
and blue. The Pacific is more desolate than other seas; its
|
|
spaces seem more vast, and the most ordinary journey upon it
|
|
has somehow the feeling of an adventure. The air you breathe
|
|
is an elixir which prepares you for the unexpected. Nor is it
|
|
vouchsafed to man in the flesh to know aught that more nearly
|
|
suggests the approach to the golden realms of fancy than the
|
|
approach to Tahiti. Murea, the sister isle, comes into view
|
|
in rocky splendour, rising from the desert sea mysteriously,
|
|
like the unsubstantial fabric of a magic wand. With its
|
|
jagged outline it is like a Monseratt of the Pacific, and you
|
|
may imagine that there Polynesian knights guard with strange
|
|
rites mysteries unholy for men to know. The beauty of the
|
|
island is unveiled as diminishing distance shows you in
|
|
distincter shape its lovely peaks, but it keeps its secret as
|
|
you sail by, and, darkly inviolable, seems to fold itself
|
|
together in a stony, inaccessible grimness. It would not
|
|
surprise you if, as you came near seeking for an opening in
|
|
the reef, it vanished suddenly from your view, and nothing met
|
|
your gaze but the blue loneliness of the Pacific.
|
|
|
|
Tahiti is a lofty green island, with deep folds of a darker
|
|
green, in which you divine silent valleys; there is mystery in
|
|
their sombre depths, down which murmur and plash cool streams,
|
|
and you feel that in those umbrageous places life from
|
|
immemorial times has been led according to immemorial ways.
|
|
Even here is something sad and terrible. But the impression
|
|
is fleeting, and serves only to give a greater acuteness to
|
|
the enjoyment of the moment. It is like the sadness which you
|
|
may see in the jester's eyes when a merry company is laughing
|
|
at his sallies; his lips smile and his jokes are gayer because in
|
|
the communion of laughter he finds himself more intolerably alone.
|
|
For Tahiti is smiling and friendly; it is like a
|
|
lovely woman graciously prodigal of her charm and beauty;
|
|
and nothing can be more conciliatory than the entrance into the
|
|
harbour at Papeete. The schooners moored to the quay are trim
|
|
and neat, the little town along the bay is white and urbane,
|
|
and the flamboyants, scarlet against the blue sky, flaunt
|
|
their colour like a cry of passion. They are sensual with an
|
|
unashamed violence that leaves you breathless. And the crowd
|
|
that throngs the wharf as the steamer draws alongside is gay
|
|
and debonair; it is a noisy, cheerful, gesticulating crowd.
|
|
It is a sea of brown faces. You have an impression of
|
|
coloured movement against the flaming blue of the sky.
|
|
Everything is done with a great deal of bustle, the unloading
|
|
of the baggage, the examination of the customs; and everyone
|
|
seems to smile at you. It is very hot. The colour dazzles you.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter XLVI
|
|
|
|
|
|
HAD not been in Tahiti long before I met Captain Nichols.
|
|
He came in one morning when I was having breakfast on the terrace
|
|
of the hotel and introduced himself. He had heard that I was
|
|
interested in Charles Strickland, and announced that he was
|
|
come to have a talk about him. They are as fond of gossip in
|
|
Tahiti as in an English village, and one or two enquiries I
|
|
had made for pictures by Strickland had been quickly spread.
|
|
I asked the stranger if he had breakfasted.
|
|
|
|
"Yes; I have my coffee early," he answered, "but I don't mind
|
|
having a drop of whisky."
|
|
|
|
I called the Chinese boy.
|
|
|
|
"You don't think it's too early?" said the Captain.
|
|
|
|
"You and your liver must decide that between you," I replied.
|
|
|
|
"I'm practically a teetotaller," he said, as he poured himself
|
|
out a good half-tumbler of Canadian Club.
|
|
|
|
When he smiled he showed broken and discoloured teeth. He was
|
|
a very lean man, of no more than average height, with gray
|
|
hair cut short and a stubbly gray moustache. He had not
|
|
shaved for a couple of days. His face was deeply lined,
|
|
burned brown by long exposure to the sun, and he had a pair of
|
|
small blue eyes which were astonishingly shifty. They moved
|
|
quickly, following my smallest gesture, and they gave him the
|
|
look of a very thorough rogue. But at the moment he was all
|
|
heartiness and good-fellowship. He was dressed in a
|
|
bedraggled suit of khaki, and his hands would have been all
|
|
the better for a wash.
|
|
|
|
"I knew Strickland well," he said, as he leaned back in his
|
|
chair and lit the cigar I had offered him. "It's through me
|
|
he came out to the islands."
|
|
|
|
"Where did you meet him?" I asked.
|
|
|
|
"In Marseilles."
|
|
|
|
"What were you doing there?"
|
|
|
|
He gave me an ingratiating smile.
|
|
|
|
"Well, I guess I was on the beach."
|
|
|
|
My friend's appearance suggested that he was now in the
|
|
same predicament, and I prepared myself to cultivate an
|
|
agreeable acquaintance. The society of beach-combers always
|
|
repays the small pains you need be at to enjoy it. They are
|
|
easy of approach and affable in conversation. They seldom put
|
|
on airs, and the offer of a drink is a sure way to their hearts.
|
|
You need no laborious steps to enter upon familiarity with
|
|
them, and you can earn not only their confidence, but their
|
|
gratitude, by turning an attentive ear to their discourse.
|
|
They look upon conversation as the great pleasure of life,
|
|
thereby proving the excellence of their civilisation, and for
|
|
the most part they are entertaining talkers. The extent of
|
|
their experience is pleasantly balanced by the fertility of
|
|
their imagination. It cannot be said that they are without guile,
|
|
but they have a tolerant respect for the law, when the
|
|
law is supported by strength. It is hazardous to play poker
|
|
with them, but their ingenuity adds a peculiar excitement to
|
|
the best game in the world. I came to know Captain Nichols
|
|
very well before I left Tahiti, and I am the richer for his
|
|
acquaintance. I do not consider that the cigars and whisky he
|
|
consumed at my expense (he always refused cocktails, since he
|
|
was practically a teetotaller), and the few dollars, borrowed
|
|
with a civil air of conferring a favour upon me, that passed
|
|
from my pocket to his, were in any way equivalent to the
|
|
entertainment he afforded me. I remained his debtor.
|
|
I should be sorry if my conscience, insisting on a rigid
|
|
attention to the matter in hand, forced me to dismiss him in a
|
|
couple of lines.
|
|
|
|
I do not know why Captain Nichols first left England. It was
|
|
a matter upon which he was reticent, and with persons of his
|
|
kidney a direct question is never very discreet. He hinted at
|
|
undeserved misfortune, and there is no doubt that he looked
|
|
upon himself as the victim of injustice. My fancy played with
|
|
the various forms of fraud and violence, and I agreed with him
|
|
sympathetically when he remarked that the authorities in the
|
|
old country were so damned technical. But it was nice to see
|
|
that any unpleasantness he had endured in his native land had
|
|
not impaired his ardent patriotism. He frequently declared
|
|
that England was the finest country in the world, sir, and he
|
|
felt a lively superiority over Americans, Colonials, Dagos,
|
|
Dutchmen, and Kanakas.
|
|
|
|
But I do not think he was a happy man. He suffered from
|
|
dyspepsia, and he might often be seen sucking a tablet of
|
|
pepsin; in the morning his appetite was poor; but this
|
|
affliction alone would hardly have impaired his spirits.
|
|
He had a greater cause of discontent with life than this.
|
|
Eight years before he had rashly married a wife. There are men
|
|
whom a merciful Providence has undoubtedly ordained to a single
|
|
life, but who from wilfulness or through circumstances they
|
|
could not cope with have flown in the face of its decrees.
|
|
There is no object more deserving of pity than the married bachelor.
|
|
Of such was Captain Nichols. I met his wife. She was
|
|
a woman of twenty-eight, I should think, though of a type
|
|
whose age is always doubtful; for she cannot have looked
|
|
different when she was twenty, and at forty would look no
|
|
older. She gave me an impression of extraordinary tightness.
|
|
Her plain face with its narrow lips was tight, her skin was
|
|
stretched tightly over her bones, her smile was tight, her
|
|
hair was tight, her clothes were tight, and the white drill
|
|
she wore had all the effect of black bombazine. I could not
|
|
imagine why Captain Nichols had married her, and having
|
|
married her why he had not deserted her. Perhaps he had,
|
|
often, and his melancholy arose from the fact that he could
|
|
never succeed. However far he went and in howsoever secret a
|
|
place he hid himself, I felt sure that Mrs. Nichols,
|
|
inexorable as fate and remorseless as conscience, would
|
|
presently rejoin him. He could as little escape her as the
|
|
cause can escape the effect.
|
|
|
|
The rogue, like the artist and perhaps the gentleman, belongs
|
|
to no class. He is not embarrassed by the <i sans gene> of
|
|
the hobo, nor put out of countenance by the etiquette of the
|
|
prince. But Mrs. Nichols belonged to the well-defined class,
|
|
of late become vocal, which is known as the lower-middle.
|
|
Her father, in fact, was a policeman. I am certain that he was
|
|
an efficient one. I do not know what her hold was on the
|
|
Captain, but I do not think it was love. I never heard her speak,
|
|
but it may be that in private she had a copious conversation.
|
|
At any rate, Captain Nichols was frightened to death of her.
|
|
Sometimes, sitting with me on the terrace of the hotel,
|
|
he would become conscious that she was walking in the road outside.
|
|
She did not call him; she gave no sign that she was aware
|
|
of his existence; she merely walked up and down composedly.
|
|
Then a strange uneasiness would seize the Captain;
|
|
he would look at his watch and sigh.
|
|
|
|
"Well, I must be off," he said.
|
|
|
|
Neither wit nor whisky could detain him then. Yet he was a
|
|
man who had faced undaunted hurricane and typhoon, and would
|
|
not have hesitated to fight a dozen unarmed niggers with
|
|
nothing but a revolver to help him. Sometimes Mrs. Nichols
|
|
would send her daughter, a pale-faced, sullen child of seven,
|
|
to the hotel.
|
|
|
|
"Mother wants you," she said, in a whining tone.
|
|
|
|
"Very well, my dear," said Captain Nichols.
|
|
|
|
He rose to his feet at once, and accompanied his daughter
|
|
along the road. I suppose it was a very pretty example of the
|
|
triumph of spirit over matter, and so my digression has at
|
|
least the advantage of a moral.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter XLVII
|
|
|
|
|
|
I have tried to put some connection into the various things
|
|
Captain Nichols told me about Strickland, and I here set them
|
|
down in the best order I can. They made one another's
|
|
acquaintance during the latter part of the winter following my
|
|
last meeting with Strickland in Paris. How he had passed the
|
|
intervening months I do not know, but life must have been very
|
|
hard, for Captain Nichols saw him first in the Asile de Nuit.
|
|
There was a strike at Marseilles at the time, and Strickland,
|
|
having come to the end of his resources, had apparently found
|
|
it impossible to earn the small sum he needed to keep body and
|
|
soul together.
|
|
|
|
The Asile de Nuit is a large stone building where pauper and
|
|
vagabond may get a bed for a week, provided their papers are
|
|
in order and they can persuade the friars in charge that they
|
|
are workingmen. Captain Nichols noticed Strickland for his
|
|
size and his singular appearance among the crowd that waited
|
|
for the doors to open; they waited listlessly, some walking to
|
|
and fro, some leaning against the wall, and others seated on
|
|
the curb with their feet in the gutter; and when they filed
|
|
into the office he heard the monk who read his papers address
|
|
him in English. But he did not have a chance to speak to him,
|
|
since, as he entered the common-room, a monk came in with a
|
|
huge Bible in his arms, mounted a pulpit which was at the end
|
|
of the room, and began the service which the wretched outcasts
|
|
had to endure as the price of their lodging. He and
|
|
Strickland were assigned to different rooms, and when, thrown
|
|
out of bed at five in the morning by a stalwart monk, he had made
|
|
his bed and washed his face, Strickland had already disappeared.
|
|
Captain Nichols wandered about the streets for an hour of
|
|
bitter cold, and then made his way to the Place Victor Gelu,
|
|
where the sailor-men are wont to congregate. Dozing against
|
|
the pedestal of a statue, he saw Strickland again.
|
|
He gave him a kick to awaken him.
|
|
|
|
"Come and have breakfast, mate," he said.
|
|
|
|
"Go to hell," answered Strickland.
|
|
|
|
I recognised my friend's limited vocabulary, and I prepared to
|
|
regard Captain Nichols as a trustworthy witness.
|
|
|
|
"Busted?" asked the Captain.
|
|
|
|
"Blast you," answered Strickland.
|
|
|
|
"Come along with me. I'll get you some breakfast."
|
|
|
|
After a moment's hesitation, Strickland scrambled to his feet,
|
|
and together they went to the Bouchee de Pain, where the
|
|
hungry are given a wedge of bread, which they must eat there
|
|
and then, for it is forbidden to take it away; and then to the
|
|
Cuillere de Soupe, where for a week, at eleven and four,
|
|
you may get a bowl of thin, salt soup. The two buildings are
|
|
placed far apart, so that only the starving should be tempted
|
|
to make use of them. So they had breakfast, and so began the
|
|
queer companionship of Charles Strickland and Captain Nichols.
|
|
|
|
They must have spent something like four months at Marseilles
|
|
in one another's society. Their career was devoid of adventure,
|
|
if by adventure you mean unexpected or thrilling incident,
|
|
for their days were occupied in the pursuit of enough
|
|
money to get a night's lodging and such food as would stay
|
|
the pangs of hunger. But I wish I could give here the pictures,
|
|
coloured and racy, which Captain Nichols' vivid narrative
|
|
offered to the imagination. His account of their discoveries
|
|
in the low life of a seaport town would have made a
|
|
charming book, and in the various characters that came their
|
|
way the student might easily have found matter for a very
|
|
complete dictionary of rogues. But I must content myself with
|
|
a few paragraphs. I received the impression of a life intense
|
|
and brutal, savage, multicoloured, and vivacious. It made the
|
|
Marseilles that I knew, gesticulating and sunny, with its
|
|
comfortable hotels and its restaurants crowded with the well-to-do,
|
|
tame and commonplace. I envied men who had seen with their
|
|
own eyes the sights that Captain Nichols described.
|
|
|
|
When the doors of the Asile de Nuit were closed to them,
|
|
Strickland and Captain Nichols sought the hospitality of Tough Bill.
|
|
This was the master of a sailors' boarding-house, a huge
|
|
mulatto with a heavy fist, who gave the stranded mariner
|
|
food and shelter till he found him a berth. They lived with
|
|
him a month, sleeping with a dozen others, Swedes, negroes,
|
|
Brazilians, on the floor of the two bare rooms in his house
|
|
which he assigned to his charges; and every day they went with
|
|
him to the Place Victor Gelu, whither came ships' captains in
|
|
search of a man. He was married to an American woman, obese
|
|
and slatternly, fallen to this pass by Heaven knows what
|
|
process of degradation, and every day the boarders took it in
|
|
turns to help her with the housework. Captain Nichols looked
|
|
upon it as a smart piece of work on Strickland's part that he
|
|
had got out of this by painting a portrait of Tough Bill.
|
|
Tough Bill not only paid for the canvas, colours, and brushes,
|
|
but gave Strickland a pound of smuggled tobacco into the
|
|
bargain. For all I know, this picture may still adorn the
|
|
parlour of the tumbledown little house somewhere near the
|
|
Quai de la Joliette, and I suppose it could now be sold for
|
|
fifteen hundred pounds. Strickland's idea was to ship on some
|
|
vessel bound for Australia or New Zealand, and from there make his
|
|
way to Samoa or Tahiti. I do not know how he had come upon
|
|
the notion of going to the South Seas, though I remember that
|
|
his imagination had long been haunted by an island, all green
|
|
and sunny, encircled by a sea more blue than is found in
|
|
Northern latitudes. I suppose that he clung to Captain
|
|
Nichols because he was acquainted with those parts, and it was
|
|
Captain Nichols who persuaded him that he would be more
|
|
comfortable in Tahiti.
|
|
|
|
"You see, Tahiti's French," he explained to me. "And the
|
|
French aren't so damned technical."
|
|
|
|
I thought I saw his point.
|
|
|
|
Strickland had no papers, but that was not a matter to
|
|
disconcert Tough Bill when he saw a profit (he took the first
|
|
month's wages of the sailor for whom he found a berth), and he
|
|
provided Strickland with those of an English stoker who had
|
|
providentially died on his hands. But both Captain Nichols
|
|
and Strickland were bound East, and it chanced that the only
|
|
opportunities for signing on were with ships sailing West.
|
|
Twice Strickland refused a berth on tramps sailing for the
|
|
United States, and once on a collier going to Newcastle.
|
|
Tough Bill had no patience with an obstinacy which could only
|
|
result in loss to himself, and on the last occasion he flung
|
|
both Strickland and Captain Nichols out of his house without
|
|
more ado. They found themselves once more adrift.
|
|
|
|
Tough Bill's fare was seldom extravagant, and you rose from
|
|
his table almost as hungry as you sat down, but for some days
|
|
they had good reason to regret it. They learned what hunger was.
|
|
The Cuillere de Soupe and the Asile de Nuit were both
|
|
closed to them, and their only sustenance was the wedge of
|
|
bread which the Bouchee de Pain provided. They slept where
|
|
they could, sometimes in an empty truck on a siding near the
|
|
station, sometimes in a cart behind a warehouse; but it was
|
|
bitterly cold, and after an hour or two of uneasy dozing they
|
|
would tramp the streets again. What they felt the lack of
|
|
most bitterly was tobacco, and Captain Nichols, for his part,
|
|
could not do without it; he took to hunting the "Can o' Beer,"
|
|
for cigarette-ends and the butt-end of cigars which the
|
|
promenaders of the night before had thrown away.
|
|
|
|
"I've tasted worse smoking mixtures in a pipe," he added,
|
|
with a philosophic shrug of his shoulders, as he took a couple
|
|
of cigars from the case I offered him, putting one in his mouth
|
|
and the other in his pocket.
|
|
|
|
Now and then they made a bit of money. Sometimes a mail
|
|
steamer would come in, and Captain Nichols, having scraped
|
|
acquaintance with the timekeeper, would succeed in getting the
|
|
pair of them a job as stevedores. When it was an English boat,
|
|
they would dodge into the forecastle and get a hearty
|
|
breakfast from the crew. They took the risk of running
|
|
against one of the ship's officers and being hustled down the
|
|
gangway with the toe of a boot to speed their going.
|
|
|
|
"There's no harm in a kick in the hindquarters when your
|
|
belly's full," said Captain Nichols, "and personally I never
|
|
take it in bad part. An officer's got to think about discipline."
|
|
|
|
I had a lively picture of Captain Nichols flying headlong down
|
|
a narrow gangway before the uplifted foot of an angry mate,
|
|
and, like a true Englishman, rejoicing in the spirit of the
|
|
Mercantile Marine.
|
|
|
|
There were often odd jobs to be got about the fish-market.
|
|
Once they each of them earned a franc by loading trucks with
|
|
innumerable boxes of oranges that had been dumped down on the quay.
|
|
One day they had a stroke of luck: one of the boarding-masters
|
|
got a contract to paint a tramp that had come in
|
|
from Madagascar round the Cape of Good Hope, and they spent
|
|
several days on a plank hanging over the side, covering the
|
|
rusty hull with paint. It was a situation that must have
|
|
appealed to Strickland's sardonic humour. I asked Captain
|
|
Nichols how he bore himself during these hardships.
|
|
|
|
"Never knew him say a cross word," answered the Captain.
|
|
"He'd be a bit surly sometimes, but when we hadn't had a bite
|
|
since morning, and we hadn't even got the price of a lie down
|
|
at the Chink's, he'd be as lively as a cricket."
|
|
|
|
I was not surprised at this. Strickland was just the man to
|
|
rise superior to circumstances, when they were such as to
|
|
occasion despondency in most; but whether this was due to
|
|
equanimity of soul or to contradictoriness it would be
|
|
difficult to say.
|
|
|
|
The Chink's Head was a name the beach-combers gave to a
|
|
wretched inn off the Rue Bouterie, kept by a one-eyed Chinaman,
|
|
where for six sous you could sleep in a cot and for
|
|
three on the floor. Here they made friends with others in as
|
|
desperate condition as themselves, and when they were
|
|
penniless and the night was bitter cold, they were glad to
|
|
borrow from anyone who had earned a stray franc during the day
|
|
the price of a roof over their heads. They were not niggardly,
|
|
these tramps, and he who had money did not hesitate
|
|
to share it among the rest. They belonged to all the
|
|
countries in the world, but this was no bar to good-fellowship;
|
|
for they felt themselves freemen of a country whose
|
|
frontiers include them all, the great country of Cockaine.
|
|
|
|
"But I guess Strickland was an ugly customer when he was roused,"
|
|
said Captain Nichols, reflectively. "One day we ran
|
|
into Tough Bill in the Place, and he asked Charlie for the
|
|
papers he'd given him."
|
|
|
|
"`You'd better come and take them if you want them,' says Charlie.
|
|
|
|
"He was a powerful fellow, Tough Bill, but he didn't quite
|
|
like the look of Charlie, so he began cursing him. He called
|
|
him pretty near every name he could lay hands on, and when
|
|
Tough Bill began cursing it was worth listening to him.
|
|
Well, Charlie stuck it for a bit, then he stepped forward and he
|
|
just said: `Get out, you bloody swine.' It wasn't so much
|
|
what he said, but the way he said it. Tough Bill never spoke
|
|
another word; you could see him go yellow, and he walked away
|
|
as if he'd remembered he had a date."
|
|
|
|
Strickland, according to Captain Nichols, did not use exactly
|
|
the words I have given, but since this book is meant for
|
|
family reading I have thought it better, at the expense of
|
|
truth, to put into his mouth expressions familiar to the
|
|
domestic circle.
|
|
|
|
Now, Tough Bill was not the man to put up with humiliation at
|
|
the hands of a common sailor. His power depended on his prestige,
|
|
and first one, then another, of the sailors who lived in
|
|
his house told them that he had sworn to do Strickland in.
|
|
|
|
One night Captain Nichols and Strickland were sitting in one
|
|
of the bars of the Rue Bouterie. The Rue Bouterie is a narrow
|
|
street of one-storeyed houses, each house consisting of but
|
|
one room; they are like the booths in a crowded fair or the
|
|
cages of animals in a circus. At every door you see a woman.
|
|
Some lean lazily against the side-posts, humming to themselves
|
|
or calling to the passer-by in a raucous voice, and some
|
|
listlessly read. They are French. Italian, Spanish,
|
|
Japanese, coloured; some are fat and some are thin; and under
|
|
the thick paint on their faces, the heavy smears on their
|
|
eyebrows, and the scarlet of their lips, you see the lines of
|
|
age and the scars of dissipation. Some wear black shifts and
|
|
flesh-coloured stockings; some with curly hair, dyed yellow,
|
|
are dressed like little girls in short muslin frocks.
|
|
Through the open door you see a red-tiled floor, a large wooden bed,
|
|
and on a deal table a ewer and a basin. A motley crowd
|
|
saunters along the streets -- Lascars off a P. and O., blond
|
|
Northmen from a Swedish barque, Japanese from a man-of-war,
|
|
English sailors, Spaniards, pleasant-looking fellows from a
|
|
French cruiser, negroes off an American tramp. By day it is
|
|
merely sordid, but at night, lit only by the lamps in the
|
|
little huts, the street has a sinister beauty. The hideous
|
|
lust that pervades the air is oppressive and horrible, and yet
|
|
there is something mysterious in the sight which haunts and
|
|
troubles you. You feel I know not what primitive force which
|
|
repels and yet fascinates you. Here all the decencies of
|
|
civilisation are swept away, and you feel that men are face to
|
|
face with a sombre reality. There is an atmosphere that is at
|
|
once intense and tragic.
|
|
|
|
In the bar in which Strickland and Nichols sat a mechanical
|
|
piano was loudly grinding out dance music. Round the room
|
|
people were sitting at table, here half a dozen sailors
|
|
uproariously drunk, there a group of soldiers; and in the
|
|
middle, crowded together, couples were dancing. Bearded
|
|
sailors with brown faces and large horny hands clasped their
|
|
partners in a tight embrace. The women wore nothing but a shift.
|
|
Now and then two sailors would get up and dance together.
|
|
The noise was deafening. People were singing, shouting,
|
|
laughing; and when a man gave a long kiss to the
|
|
girl sitting on his knees, cat-calls from the English sailors
|
|
increased the din. The air was heavy with the dust beaten up
|
|
by the heavy boots of the men, and gray with smoke. It was
|
|
very hot. Behind the bar was seated a woman nursing her baby.
|
|
The waiter, an undersized youth with a flat, spotty face,
|
|
hurried to and fro carrying a tray laden with glasses of beer.
|
|
|
|
In a little while Tough Bill, accompanied by two huge negroes,
|
|
came in, and it was easy to see that he was already three
|
|
parts drunk. He was looking for trouble. He lurched against
|
|
a table at which three soldiers were sitting and knocked over
|
|
a glass of beer. There was an angry altercation, and the
|
|
owner of the bar stepped forward and ordered Tough Bill to go.
|
|
He was a hefty fellow, in the habit of standing no nonsense
|
|
from his customers, and Tough Bill hesitated. The landlord
|
|
was not a man he cared to tackle, for the police were on his side,
|
|
and with an oath he turned on his heel. Suddenly he
|
|
caught sight of Strickland. He rolled up to him. He did not speak.
|
|
He gathered the spittle in his mouth and spat full in
|
|
Strickland's face. Strickland seized his glass and flung it
|
|
at him. The dancers stopped suddenly still. There was an
|
|
instant of complete silence, but when Tough Bill threw himself
|
|
on Strickland the lust of battle seized them all, and in a
|
|
moment there was a confused scrimmage. Tables were
|
|
overturned, glasses crashed to the ground. There was a
|
|
hellish row. The women scattered to the door and behind the bar.
|
|
Passers-by surged in from the street. You heard curses
|
|
in every tongue the sound of blows, cries; and in the middle
|
|
of the room a dozen men were fighting with all their might.
|
|
On a sudden the police rushed in, and everyone who could made
|
|
for the door. When the bar was more or less cleared, Tough
|
|
Bill was lying insensible on the floor with a great gash in
|
|
his head. Captain Nichols dragged Strickland, bleeding from a
|
|
wound in his arm, his clothes in rags, into the street.
|
|
His own face was covered with blood from a blow on the nose.
|
|
|
|
"I guess you'd better get out of Marseilles before Tough Bill
|
|
comes out of hospital," he said to Strickland, when they had
|
|
got back to the Chink's Head and were cleaning themselves.
|
|
|
|
"This beats cock-fighting," said Strickland.
|
|
|
|
I could see his sardonic smile.
|
|
|
|
Captain Nichols was anxious. He knew Tough Bill's vindictiveness.
|
|
Strickland had downed the mulatto twice, and the mulatto,
|
|
sober, was a man to be reckoned with. He would bide
|
|
his time stealthily. He would be in no hurry, but one
|
|
night Strickland would get a knife-thrust in his back, and in
|
|
a day or two the corpse of a nameless beach-comber would be
|
|
fished out of the dirty water of the harbour. Nichols went
|
|
next evening to Tough Bill's house and made enquiries. He was
|
|
in hospital still, but his wife, who had been to see him, said
|
|
he was swearing hard to kill Strickland when they let him out.
|
|
|
|
A week passed.
|
|
|
|
"That's what I always say," reflected Captain Nichols,
|
|
"when you hurt a man, hurt him bad. It gives you a bit of
|
|
time to look about and think what you'll do next."
|
|
|
|
Then Strickland had a bit of luck. A ship bound for Australia
|
|
had sent to the Sailors' Home for a stoker in place of one who
|
|
had thrown himself overboard off Gibraltar in an attack of
|
|
delirium tremens.
|
|
|
|
"You double down to the harbour, my lad," said the Captain to
|
|
Strickland, "and sign on. You've got your papers."
|
|
|
|
Strickland set off at once, and that was the last Captain
|
|
Nichols saw of him. The ship was only in port for six hours,
|
|
and in the evening Captain Nichols watched the vanishing smoke
|
|
from her funnels as she ploughed East through the wintry sea.
|
|
|
|
I have narrated all this as best I could, because I like the
|
|
contrast of these episodes with the life that I had seen
|
|
Strickland live in Ashley Gardens when he was occupied with
|
|
stocks and shares; but I am aware that Captain Nichols was an
|
|
outrageous liar, and I dare say there is not a word of truth
|
|
in anything he told me. I should not be surprised to learn
|
|
that he had never seen Strickland in his life, and owed his
|
|
knowledge of Marseilles to the pages of a magazine.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter XLVIII
|
|
|
|
|
|
It is here that I purposed to end my book. My first idea was
|
|
to begin it with the account of Strickland's last years in
|
|
Tahiti and with his horrible death, and then to go back and
|
|
relate what I knew of his beginnings. This I meant to do,
|
|
not from wilfulness, but because I wished to leave Strickland
|
|
setting out with I know not what fancies in his lonely soul
|
|
for the unknown islands which fired his imagination. I liked
|
|
the picture of him starting at the age of forty-seven,
|
|
when most men have already settled comfortably in a groove,
|
|
for a new world. I saw him, the sea gray under the mistral and
|
|
foam-flecked, watching the vanishing coast of France, which he
|
|
was destined never to see again; and I thought there was
|
|
something gallant in his bearing and dauntless in his soul.
|
|
I wished so to end on a note of hope. It seemed to emphasise
|
|
the unconquerable spirit of man. But I could not manage it.
|
|
Somehow I could not get into my story, and after trying once
|
|
or twice I had to give it up; I started from the beginning in
|
|
the usual way, and made up my mind I could only tell what I
|
|
knew of Strickland's life in the order in which I learnt the facts.
|
|
|
|
Those that I have now are fragmentary. I am in the position
|
|
of a biologist who from a single bone must reconstruct not
|
|
only the appearance of an extinct animal, but its habits.
|
|
Strickland made no particular impression on the people who
|
|
came in contact with him in Tahiti. To them he was no more
|
|
than a beach-comber in constant need of money, remarkable only
|
|
for the peculiarity that he painted pictures which seemed to
|
|
them absurd; and it was not till he had been dead for some
|
|
years and agents came from the dealers in Paris and Berlin to
|
|
look for any pictures which might still remain on the island,
|
|
that they had any idea that among them had dwelt a man of consequence.
|
|
They remembered then that they could have bought for
|
|
a song canvases which now were worth large sums, and they
|
|
could not forgive themselves for the opportunity which had
|
|
escaped them. There was a Jewish trader called Cohen, who had
|
|
come by one of Strickland's pictures in a singular way.
|
|
He was a little old Frenchman, with soft kind eyes and a pleasant
|
|
smile, half trader and half seaman, who owned a cutter in
|
|
which he wandered boldly among the Paumotus and the Marquesas,
|
|
taking out trade goods and bringing back copra, shell, and pearls.
|
|
I went to see him because I was told he had a large black
|
|
pearl which he was willing to sell cheaply, and when I
|
|
discovered that it was beyond my means I began to talk to him
|
|
about Strickland. He had known him well.
|
|
|
|
"You see, I was interested in him because he was a painter,"
|
|
he told me. "We don't get many painters in the islands, and I
|
|
was sorry for him because he was such a bad one. I gave him
|
|
his first job. I had a plantation on the peninsula, and I
|
|
wanted a white overseer. You never get any work out of the
|
|
natives unless you have a white man over them. I said to him:
|
|
`You'll have plenty of time for painting, and you can earn a
|
|
bit of money.' I knew he was starving, but I offered him good wages."
|
|
|
|
"I can't imagine that he was a very satisfactory overseer,"
|
|
I said, smiling.
|
|
|
|
"I made allowances. I have always had a sympathy for artists.
|
|
It is in our blood, you know. But he only remained a few
|
|
months. When he had enough money to buy paints and canvases
|
|
he left me. The place had got hold of him by then, and he
|
|
wanted to get away into the bush. But I continued to see him
|
|
now and then. He would turn up in Papeete every few months
|
|
and stay a little while; he'd get money out of someone or
|
|
other and then disappear again. It was on one of these visits
|
|
that he came to me and asked for the loan of two hundred
|
|
francs. He looked as if he hadn't had a meal for a week, and
|
|
I hadn't the heart to refuse him. Of course, I never expected
|
|
to see my money again. Well, a year later he came to see me
|
|
once more, and he brought a picture with him. He did not
|
|
mention the money he owed me, but he said: `Here is a picture
|
|
of your plantation that I've painted for you.' I looked at it.
|
|
I did not know what to say, but of course I thanked him, and
|
|
when he had gone away I showed it to my wife."
|
|
|
|
"What was it like?" I asked.
|
|
|
|
"Do not ask me. I could not make head or tail of it. I never
|
|
saw such a thing in my life. `What shall we do with it?'
|
|
I said to my wife. `We can never hang it up,' she said.
|
|
`People would laugh at us.' So she took it into an attic and
|
|
put it away with all sorts of rubbish, for my wife can never
|
|
throw anything away. It is her mania. Then, imagine to
|
|
yourself, just before the war my brother wrote to me from
|
|
Paris, and said: `Do you know anything about an English
|
|
painter who lived in Tahiti? It appears that he was a genius,
|
|
and his pictures fetch large prices. See if you can lay your
|
|
hands on anything and send it to me. There's money to be
|
|
made.' So I said to my wife. `What about that picture that
|
|
Strickland gave me?' Is it possible that it is still in the
|
|
attic?' `Without doubt,' she answered, ` for you know that I
|
|
never throw anything away. It is my mania.' We went up to the
|
|
attic, and there, among I know not what rubbish that had been
|
|
gathered during the thirty years we have inhabited that house,
|
|
was the picture. I looked at it again, and I said:
|
|
`Who would have thought that the overseer of my plantation on
|
|
the peninsula, to whom I lent two hundred francs, had genius?
|
|
Do you see anything in the picture?' `No,' she said, `it does not
|
|
resemble the plantation and I have never seen cocoa-nuts with
|
|
blue leaves; but they are mad in Paris, and it may be that
|
|
your brother will be able to sell it for the two hundred
|
|
francs you lent Strickland.' Well, we packed it up and we sent
|
|
it to my brother. And at last I received a letter from him.
|
|
What do you think he said? `I received your picture,' he said,
|
|
`and I confess I thought it was a joke that you had played on me.
|
|
I would not have given the cost of postage for the picture.
|
|
I was half afraid to show it to the gentleman who
|
|
had spoken to me about it. Imagine my surprise when he said
|
|
it was a masterpiece, and offered me thirty thousand francs.
|
|
I dare say he would have paid more, but frankly I was so taken
|
|
aback that I lost my head; I accepted the offer before I was
|
|
able to collect myself.'"
|
|
|
|
Then Monsieur Cohen said an admirable thing.
|
|
|
|
"I wish that poor Strickland had been still alive. I wonder
|
|
what he would have said when I gave him twenty-nine thousand
|
|
eight hundred francs for his picture."
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter XLIX
|
|
|
|
|
|
I lived at the Hotel de la Fleur, and Mrs. Johnson, the
|
|
proprietress, had a sad story to tell of lost opportunity.
|
|
After Strickland's death certain of his effects were sold by
|
|
auction in the market-place at Papeete, and she went to it
|
|
herself because there was among the truck an American stove
|
|
she wanted. She paid twenty-seven francs for it.
|
|
|
|
"There were a dozen pictures," she told me, "but they were
|
|
unframed, and nobody wanted them. Some of them sold for as
|
|
much as ten francs, but mostly they went for five or six.
|
|
Just think, if I had bought them I should be a rich woman now."
|
|
|
|
But Tiare Johnson would never under any circumstances have
|
|
been rich. She could not keep money. The daughter of a
|
|
native and an English sea-captain settled in Tahiti, when I
|
|
knew her she was a woman of fifty, who looked older, and of
|
|
enormous proportions. Tall and extremely stout, she would
|
|
have been of imposing presence if the great good-nature of her
|
|
face had not made it impossible for her to express anything
|
|
but kindliness. Her arms were like legs of mutton, her
|
|
breasts like giant cabbages; her face, broad and fleshy, gave
|
|
you an impression of almost indecent nakedness, and vast chin
|
|
succeeded to vast chin. I do not know how many of them there were.
|
|
They fell away voluminously into the capaciousness of her bosom.
|
|
She was dressed usually in a pink Mother Hubbard,
|
|
and she wore all day long a large straw hat. But when she let
|
|
down her hair, which she did now and then, for she was vain of
|
|
it, you saw that it was long and dark and curly; and her eyes
|
|
had remained young and vivacious. Her laughter was the most
|
|
catching I ever heard; it would begin, a low peal in her throat,
|
|
and would grow louder and louder till her whole vast
|
|
body shook. She loved three things -- a joke, a glass of
|
|
wine, and a handsome man. To have known her is a privilege.
|
|
|
|
She was the best cook on the island, and she adored good food.
|
|
From morning till night you saw her sitting on a low chair in
|
|
the kitchen, surrounded by a Chinese cook and two or three
|
|
native girls, giving her orders, chatting sociably with all
|
|
and sundry, and tasting the savoury messes she devised. When
|
|
she wished to do honour to a friend she cooked the dinner with
|
|
her own hands. Hospitality was a passion with her, and there
|
|
was no one on the island who need go without a dinner when
|
|
there was anything to eat at the Hotel de la Fleur. She never
|
|
turned her customers out of her house because they did not pay
|
|
their bills. She always hoped they would pay when they could.
|
|
There was one man there who had fallen on adversity, and to
|
|
him she had given board and lodging for several months.
|
|
When the Chinese laundryman refused to wash for him without
|
|
payment she had sent his things to be washed with hers. She could
|
|
not allow the poor fellow to go about in a dirty shirt, she said,
|
|
and since he was a man, and men must smoke, she gave him a
|
|
franc a day for cigarettes. She used him with the same
|
|
affability as those of her clients who paid their bills once a week.
|
|
|
|
Age and obesity had made her inapt for love, but she took a
|
|
keen interest in the amatory affairs of the young. She looked
|
|
upon venery as the natural occupation for men and women, and
|
|
was ever ready with precept and example from her own wide experience.
|
|
|
|
"I was not fifteen when my father found that I had a lover,"
|
|
she said. "He was third mate on the <i Tropic Bird>.
|
|
A good-looking boy."
|
|
|
|
She sighed a little. They say a woman always remembers her
|
|
first lover with affection; but perhaps she does not always
|
|
remember him.
|
|
|
|
"My father was a sensible man."
|
|
|
|
"What did he do?" I asked.
|
|
|
|
"He thrashed me within an inch of my life, and then he made me
|
|
marry Captain Johnson. I did not mind. He was older,
|
|
of course, but he was good-looking too."
|
|
|
|
Tiare -- her father had called her by the name of the white,
|
|
scented flower which, they tell you, if you have once smelt,
|
|
will always draw you back to Tahiti in the end, however far
|
|
you may have roamed -- Tiare remembered Strickland very well.
|
|
|
|
"He used to come here sometimes, and I used to see him walking
|
|
about Papeete. I was sorry for him, he was so thin, and he
|
|
never had any money. When I heard he was in town, I used to
|
|
send a boy to find him and make him come to dinner with me.
|
|
I got him a job once or twice, but he couldn't stick to
|
|
anything. After a little while he wanted to get back to the
|
|
bush, and one morning he would be gone."
|
|
|
|
Strickland reached Tahiti about six months after he left
|
|
Marseilles. He worked his passage on a sailing vessel that
|
|
was making the trip from Auckland to San Francisco, and he
|
|
arrived with a box of paints, an easel, and a dozen canvases.
|
|
He had a few pounds in his pocket, for he had found work in
|
|
Sydney, and he took a small room in a native house outside the town.
|
|
I think the moment he reached Tahiti he felt himself at home.
|
|
Tiare told me that he said to her once:
|
|
|
|
"I'd been scrubbing the deck, and all at once a chap said to me:
|
|
`Why, there it is.' And I looked up and I saw the outline
|
|
of the island. I knew right away that there was the place I'd
|
|
been looking for all my life. Then we came near, and I seemed
|
|
to recognise it. Sometimes when I walk about it all seems familiar.
|
|
I could swear I've lived here before."
|
|
|
|
"Sometimes it takes them like that," said Tiare. "I've known
|
|
men come on shore for a few hours while their ship was taking
|
|
in cargo, and never go back. And I've known men who came here
|
|
to be in an office for a year, and they cursed the place, and
|
|
when they went away they took their dying oath they'd hang
|
|
themselves before they came back again, and in six months
|
|
you'd see them land once more, and they'd tell you they
|
|
couldn't live anywhere else."
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter L
|
|
|
|
|
|
I have an idea that some men are born out of their due place.
|
|
Accident has cast them amid certain surroundings, but they
|
|
have always a nostalgia for a home they know not. They are
|
|
strangers in their birthplace, and the leafy lanes they have
|
|
known from childhood or the populous streets in which they
|
|
have played, remain but a place of passage. They may spend
|
|
their whole lives aliens among their kindred and remain aloof
|
|
among the only scenes they have ever known. Perhaps it is
|
|
this sense of strangeness that sends men far and wide in the
|
|
search for something permanent, to which they may attach
|
|
themselves. Perhaps some deeprooted atavism urges the
|
|
wanderer back to lands which his ancestors left in the dim
|
|
beginnings of history. Sometimes a man hits upon a place to
|
|
which he mysteriously feels that he belongs. Here is the home
|
|
he sought, and he will settle amid scenes that he has never
|
|
seen before, among men he has never known, as though they were
|
|
familiar to him from his birth. Here at last he finds rest.
|
|
|
|
I told Tiare the story of a man I had known at St. Thomas's
|
|
Hospital. He was a Jew named Abraham, a blond, rather stout
|
|
young man, shy and very unassuming; but he had remarkable gifts.
|
|
He entered the hospital with a scholarship, and during
|
|
the five years of the curriculum gained every prize that was
|
|
open to him. He was made house-physician and house-surgeon.
|
|
His brilliance was allowed by all. Finally he was elected to
|
|
a position on the staff, and his career was assured. So far
|
|
as human things can be predicted, it was certain that he would
|
|
rise to the greatest heights of his profession. Honours and
|
|
wealth awaited him. Before he entered upon his new duties he
|
|
wished to take a holiday, and, having no private means,
|
|
he went as surgeon on a tramp steamer to the Levant.
|
|
It did not generally carry a doctor, but one of the senior
|
|
surgeons at the hospital knew a director of the line,
|
|
and Abraham was taken as a favour.
|
|
|
|
In a few weeks the authorities received his resignation of the
|
|
coveted position on the staff. It created profound
|
|
astonishment, and wild rumours were current. Whenever a man
|
|
does anything unexpected, his fellows ascribe it to the most
|
|
discreditable motives. But there was a man ready to step into
|
|
Abraham's shoes, and Abraham was forgotten. Nothing more was
|
|
heard of him. He vanished.
|
|
|
|
It was perhaps ten years later that one morning on board ship,
|
|
about to land at Alexandria, I was bidden to line up with the
|
|
other passengers for the doctor's examination. The doctor was
|
|
a stout man in shabby clothes, and when he took off his hat I
|
|
noticed that he was very bald. I had an idea that I had seen
|
|
him before. Suddenly I remembered.
|
|
|
|
"Abraham," I said.
|
|
|
|
He turned to me with a puzzled look, and then, recognizing me,
|
|
seized my hand. After expressions of surprise on either side,
|
|
hearing that I meant to spend the night in Alexandria, he
|
|
asked me to dine with him at the English Club. When we met
|
|
again I declared my astonishment at finding him there. It was
|
|
a very modest position that he occupied, and there was about
|
|
him an air of straitened circumstance. Then he told me his story.
|
|
When he set out on his holiday in the Mediterranean he
|
|
had every intention of returning to London and his appointment
|
|
at St. Thomas's. One morning the tramp docked at Alexandria,
|
|
and from the deck he looked at the city, white in the
|
|
sunlight, and the crowd on the wharf; he saw the natives in
|
|
their shabby gabardines, the blacks from the Soudan, the noisy
|
|
throng of Greeks and Italians, the grave Turks in tarbooshes,
|
|
the sunshine and the blue sky; and something happened to him.
|
|
He could not describe it. It was like a thunder-clap, he
|
|
said, and then, dissatisfied with this, he said it was like a
|
|
revelation. Something seemed to twist his heart, and suddenly
|
|
he felt an exultation, a sense of wonderful freedom. He felt
|
|
himself at home, and he made up his mind there and then, in a
|
|
minute, that he would live the rest of his life in Alexandria.
|
|
He had no great difficulty in leaving the ship, and in twenty-four
|
|
hours, with all his belongings, he was on shore.
|
|
|
|
"The Captain must have thought you as mad as a hatter," I smiled.
|
|
|
|
"I didn't care what anybody thought. It wasn't I that acted,
|
|
but something stronger within me. I thought I would go to a
|
|
little Greek hotel, while I looked about, and I felt I knew
|
|
where to find one. And do you know, I walked straight there,
|
|
and when I saw it, I recognised it at once."
|
|
|
|
"Had you been to Alexandria before?"
|
|
|
|
"No; I'd never been out of England in my life."
|
|
|
|
Presently he entered the Government service, and there he had
|
|
been ever since.
|
|
|
|
"Have you never regretted it?"
|
|
|
|
"Never, not for a minute. I earn just enough to live upon,
|
|
and I'm satisfied. I ask nothing more than to remain as I am
|
|
till I die. I've had a wonderful life."
|
|
|
|
I left Alexandria next day, and I forgot about Abraham till a
|
|
little while ago, when I was dining with another old friend in
|
|
the profession, Alec Carmichael, who was in England on short leave.
|
|
I ran across him in the street and congratulated him on
|
|
the knighthood with which his eminent services during the
|
|
war had been rewarded. We arranged to spend an evening
|
|
together for old time's sake, and when I agreed to dine with
|
|
him, he proposed that he should ask nobody else, so that we
|
|
could chat without interruption. He had a beautiful old house
|
|
in Queen Anne Street, and being a man of taste he had
|
|
furnished it admirably. On the walls of the diningroom I saw
|
|
a charming Bellotto, and there was a pair of Zoffanys that I envied.
|
|
When his wife, a tall, lovely creature in cloth of gold,
|
|
had left us, I remarked laughingly on the change in his
|
|
present circumstances from those when we had both been medical
|
|
students. We had looked upon it then as an extravagance to
|
|
dine in a shabby Italian restaurant in the Westminster Bridge Road.
|
|
Now Alec Carmichael was on the staff of half a dozen hospitals.
|
|
I should think he earned ten thousand a year, and his
|
|
knighthood was but the first of the honours which must
|
|
inevitably fall to his lot.
|
|
|
|
"I've done pretty well," he said, "but the strange thing is
|
|
that I owe it all to one piece of luck."
|
|
|
|
"What do you mean by that?"
|
|
|
|
"Well, do you remember Abraham? He was the man who had the future.
|
|
When we were students he beat me all along the line.
|
|
He got the prizes and the scholarships that I went in for.
|
|
I always played second fiddle to him. If he'd kept on he'd be
|
|
in the position I'm in now. That man had a genius for surgery.
|
|
No one had a look in with him. When he was
|
|
appointed Registrar at Thomas's I hadn't a chance of getting
|
|
on the staff. I should have had to become a G.P., and you
|
|
know what likelihood there is for a G.P. ever to get out of
|
|
the common rut. But Abraham fell out, and I got the job.
|
|
That gave me my opportunity."
|
|
|
|
"I dare say that's true."
|
|
|
|
"It was just luck. I suppose there was some kink in Abraham.
|
|
Poor devil, he's gone to the dogs altogether. He's got some
|
|
twopenny-halfpenny job in the medical at Alexandria --
|
|
sanitary officer or something like that. I'm told he lives
|
|
with an ugly old Greek woman and has half a dozen scrofulous kids.
|
|
The fact is, I suppose, that it's not enough to have brains.
|
|
The thing that counts is character. Abraham hadn't got character."
|
|
|
|
Character? I should have thought it needed a good deal of
|
|
character to throw up a career after half an hour's
|
|
meditation, because you saw in another way of living a more
|
|
intense significance. And it required still more character
|
|
never to regret the sudden step. But I said nothing, and Alec
|
|
Carmichael proceeded reflectively:
|
|
|
|
"Of course it would be hypocritical for me to pretend that I
|
|
regret what Abraham did. After all, I've scored by it."
|
|
He puffed luxuriously at the long Corona he was smoking.
|
|
"But if I weren't personally concerned I should be sorry at the waste.
|
|
It seems a rotten thing that a man should make such a hash of life."
|
|
|
|
I wondered if Abraham really had made a hash of life.
|
|
Is to do what you most want, to live under the conditions that
|
|
please you, in peace with yourself, to make a hash of life;
|
|
and is it success to be an eminent surgeon with ten thousand a
|
|
year and a beautiful wife? I suppose it depends on what
|
|
meaning you attach to life, the claim which you acknowledge to
|
|
society, and the claim of the individual. But again I held my
|
|
tongue, for who am I to argue with a knight?
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter LII
|
|
|
|
|
|
Tiare, when I told her this story, praised my prudence, and
|
|
for a few minutes we worked in silence, for we were shelling
|
|
peas. Then her eyes, always alert for the affairs of her
|
|
kitchen, fell on some action of the Chinese cook which aroused
|
|
her violent disapproval. She turned on him with a torrent of abuse.
|
|
The Chink was not backward to defend himself, and a
|
|
very lively quarrel ensued. They spoke in the native language,
|
|
of which I had learnt but half a dozen words, and it sounded
|
|
as though the world would shortly come to an end;
|
|
but presently peace was restored and Tiare gave the cook a
|
|
cigarette. They both smoked comfortably.
|
|
|
|
"Do you know, it was I who found him his wife?" said Tiare
|
|
suddenly, with a smile that spread all over her immense face.
|
|
|
|
"The cook?"
|
|
|
|
"No, Strickland."
|
|
|
|
"But he had one already."
|
|
|
|
"That is what he said, but I told him she was in England,
|
|
and England is at the other end of the world."
|
|
|
|
"True," I replied.
|
|
|
|
"He would come to Papeete every two or three months, when he
|
|
wanted paints or tobacco or money, and then he would wander
|
|
about like a lost dog. I was sorry for him. I had a girl
|
|
here then called Ata to do the rooms; she was some sort of a
|
|
relation of mine, and her father and mother were dead, so I
|
|
had her to live with me. Strickland used to come here now and
|
|
then to have a square meal or to play chess with one of the boys.
|
|
I noticed that she looked at him when he came, and I
|
|
asked her if she liked him. She said she liked him well enough.
|
|
You know what these girls are; they're always pleased
|
|
to go with a white man."
|
|
|
|
"Was she a native?" I asked.
|
|
|
|
"Yes; she hadn't a drop of white blood in her. Well, after
|
|
I'd talked to her I sent for Strickland, and I said to him:
|
|
`Strickland, it's time for you to settle down. A man of your
|
|
age shouldn't go playing about with the girls down at the front.
|
|
They're bad lots, and you'll come to no good with them.
|
|
You've got no money, and you can never keep a job for
|
|
more than a month or two. No one will employ you now.
|
|
You say you can always live in the bush with one or other of
|
|
the natives, and they're glad to have you because you're a
|
|
white man, but it's not decent for a white man. Now, listen
|
|
to me, Strickland.'"
|
|
|
|
Tiare mingled French with English in her conversation, for she
|
|
used both languages with equal facility. She spoke them with
|
|
a singing accent which was not unpleasing. You felt that a
|
|
bird would speak in these tones if it could speak English.
|
|
|
|
"'Now, what do you say to marrying Ata? She's a good girl and
|
|
she's only seventeen. She's never been promiscuous like some
|
|
of these girls -- a captain or a first mate, yes, but she's
|
|
never been touched by a native. <i Elle se respecte, vois-tu>.
|
|
The purser of the <i Oahu> told me last journey that he hadn't
|
|
met a nicer girl in the islands. It's time she settled
|
|
down too, and besides, the captains and the first mates like a
|
|
change now and then. I don't keep my girls too long. She has
|
|
a bit of property down by Taravao, just before you come to the
|
|
peninsula, and with copra at the price it is now you could
|
|
live quite comfortably. There's a house, and you'd have all
|
|
the time you wanted for your painting. What do you say to it?"
|
|
|
|
Tiare paused to take breath.
|
|
|
|
"It was then he told me of his wife in England. 'My poor
|
|
Strickland,' I said to him, 'they've all got a wife somewhere;
|
|
that is generally why they come to the islands. Ata is a
|
|
sensible girl, and she doesn't expect any ceremony before the
|
|
Mayor. She's a Protestant, and you know they don't look upon
|
|
these things like the Catholics.'
|
|
|
|
"Then he said: `But what does Ata say to it?' `It appears
|
|
that she has a <i beguin> for you,' I said. `She's willing if
|
|
you are. Shall I call her?' He chuckled in a funny, dry way
|
|
he had, and I called her. She knew what I was talking about,
|
|
the hussy, and I saw her out of the corner of my eyes
|
|
listening with all her ears, while she pretended to iron a
|
|
blouse that she had been washing for me. She came. She was
|
|
laughing, but I could see that she was a little shy,
|
|
and Strickland looked at her without speaking."
|
|
|
|
"Was she pretty?" I asked.
|
|
|
|
"Not bad. But you must have seen pictures of her. He painted
|
|
her over and over again, sometimes with a <i pareo> on and
|
|
sometimes with nothing at all. Yes, she was pretty enough.
|
|
And she knew how to cook. I taught her myself. I saw
|
|
Strickland was thinking of it, so I said to him: 'I've given
|
|
her good wages and she's saved them, and the captains and the
|
|
first mates she's known have given her a little something now
|
|
and then. She's saved several hundred francs.'
|
|
|
|
"He pulled his great red beard and smiled.
|
|
|
|
"`Well, Ata,' he said, 'do you fancy me for a husband.'
|
|
|
|
"She did not say anything, but just giggled.
|
|
|
|
"`But I tell you, my poor Strickland, the girl has a
|
|
<i beguin> for you,' I said.
|
|
|
|
"I shall beat you,' he said, looking at her.
|
|
|
|
"`How else should I know you loved me,' she answered."
|
|
|
|
Tiare broke off her narrative and addressed herself to me
|
|
reflectively.
|
|
|
|
"My first husband, Captain Johnson, used to thrash me
|
|
regularly. He was a man. He was handsome, six foot three,
|
|
and when he was drunk there was no holding him. I would be
|
|
black and blue all over for days at a time. Oh, I cried when
|
|
he died. I thought I should never get over it. But it wasn't
|
|
till I married George Rainey that I knew what I'd lost.
|
|
You can never tell what a man is like till you live with him.
|
|
I've never been so deceived in a man as I was in George
|
|
Rainey. He was a fine, upstanding fellow too. He was nearly
|
|
as tall as Captain Johnson, and he looked strong enough. But
|
|
it was all on the surface. He never drank. He never raised
|
|
his hand to me. He might have been a missionary. I made love
|
|
with the officers of every ship that touched the island, and
|
|
George Rainey never saw anything. At last I was disgusted
|
|
with him, and I got a divorce. What was the good of a husband
|
|
like that? It's a terrible thing the way some men treat women."
|
|
|
|
I condoled with Tiare, and remarked feelingly that men were
|
|
deceivers ever, then asked her to go on with her story of Strickland.
|
|
|
|
"`Well,' I said to him, `there's no hurry about it. Take your
|
|
time and think it over. Ata has a very nice room in the
|
|
annexe. Live with her for a month, and see how you like her.
|
|
You can have your meals here. And at the end of a month, if
|
|
you decide you want to marry her, you can just go and settle
|
|
down on her property.'
|
|
|
|
"Well, he agreed to that. Ata continued to do the housework,
|
|
and I gave him his meals as I said I would. I taught Ata to
|
|
make one or two dishes I knew he was fond of. He did not
|
|
paint much. He wandered about the hills and bathed in the stream.
|
|
And he sat about the front looking at the lagoon, and
|
|
at sunset he would go down and look at Murea. He used to go
|
|
fishing on the reef. He loved to moon about the harbour
|
|
talking to the natives. He was a nice, quiet fellow.
|
|
And every evening after dinner he would go down to the annexe
|
|
with Ata. I saw he was longing to get away to the bush,
|
|
and at the end of the month I asked him what he intended to do.
|
|
He said if Ata was willing to go, he was willing to go with her.
|
|
So I gave them a wedding dinner. I cooked it with my own hands.
|
|
I gave them a pea soup and lobster <i a la portugaise,> and a
|
|
curry, and a cocoa-nut salad -- you've never had one of my
|
|
cocoa-nut salads, have you? I must make you one before you go
|
|
-- and then I made them an ice. We had all the champagne we
|
|
could drink and liqueurs to follow. Oh, I'd made up my mind
|
|
to do things well. And afterwards we danced in the drawing-room.
|
|
I was not so fat, then, and I always loved dancing."
|
|
|
|
The drawing-room at the Hotel de la Fleur was a small room,
|
|
with a cottage piano, and a suite of mahogany furniture,
|
|
covered in stamped velvet, neatly arranged around the walls.
|
|
On round tables were photograph albums, and on the walls
|
|
enlarged photographs of Tiare and her first husband, Captain
|
|
Johnson. Still, though Tiare was old and fat, on occasion we
|
|
rolled back the Brussels carpet, brought in the maids and one
|
|
or two friends of Tiare's, and danced, though now to the
|
|
wheezy music of a gramaphone. On the verandah the air was
|
|
scented with the heavy perfume of the tiare, and overhead the
|
|
Southern Cross shone in a cloudless sky.
|
|
|
|
Tiare smiled indulgently as she remembered the gaiety of a
|
|
time long passed.
|
|
|
|
"We kept it up till three, and when we went to bed I don't
|
|
think anyone was very sober. I had told them they could have
|
|
my trap to take them as far as the road went, because after
|
|
that they had a long walk. Ata's property was right away in a
|
|
fold of the mountain. They started at dawn, and the boy I
|
|
sent with them didn't come back till next day.
|
|
|
|
"Yes, that's how Strickland was married."
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter LII
|
|
|
|
|
|
I suppose the next three years were the happiest of
|
|
Strickland's life. Ata's house stood about eight kilometres
|
|
from the road that runs round the island, and you went to it
|
|
along a winding pathway shaded by the luxuriant trees of the
|
|
tropics. It was a bungalow of unpainted wood, consisting of
|
|
two small rooms, and outside was a small shed that served as a
|
|
kitchen. There was no furniture except the mats they used as
|
|
beds, and a rocking-chair, which stood on the verandah.
|
|
Bananas with their great ragged leaves, like the tattered
|
|
habiliments of an empress in adversity, grew close up to the house.
|
|
There was a tree just behind which bore alligator pears,
|
|
and all about were the cocoa-nuts which gave the land
|
|
its revenue. Ata's father had planted crotons round his property,
|
|
and they grew in coloured profusion, gay and brilliant;
|
|
they fenced the land with flame. A mango grew in front
|
|
of the house, and at the edge of the clearing were two
|
|
flamboyants, twin trees, that challenged the gold of the
|
|
cocoa-nuts with their scarlet flowers.
|
|
|
|
Here Strickland lived, coming seldom to Papeete, on the
|
|
produce of the land. There was a little stream that ran not
|
|
far away, in which he bathed, and down this on occasion would
|
|
come a shoal of fish. Then the natives would assemble with spears,
|
|
and with much shouting would transfix the great startled
|
|
things as they hurried down to the sea. Sometimes Strickland
|
|
would go down to the reef, and come back with a basket
|
|
of small, coloured fish that Ata would fry in cocoa-nut oil,
|
|
or with a lobster; and sometimes she would make a savoury
|
|
dish of the great land-crabs that scuttled away under your feet.
|
|
Up the mountain were wild-orange trees, and now and
|
|
then Ata would go with two or three women from the village and
|
|
return laden with the green, sweet, luscious fruit. Then the
|
|
cocoa-nuts would be ripe for picking, and her cousins (like
|
|
all the natives, Ata had a host of relatives) would swarm up
|
|
the trees and throw down the big ripe nuts. They split them
|
|
open and put them in the sun to dry. Then they cut out the
|
|
copra and put it into sacks, and the women would carry it down
|
|
to the trader at the village by the lagoon, and he would give
|
|
in exchange for it rice and soap and tinned meat and a little money.
|
|
Sometimes there would be a feast in the neighbourhood,
|
|
and a pig would be killed. Then they would go and eat
|
|
themselves sick, and dance, and sing hymns.
|
|
|
|
But the house was a long way from the village, and the
|
|
Tahitians are lazy. They love to travel and they love to
|
|
gossip, but they do not care to walk, and for weeks at a time
|
|
Strickland and Ata lived alone. He painted and he read, and
|
|
in the evening, when it was dark, they sat together on the
|
|
verandah, smoking and looking at the night. Then Ata had a
|
|
baby, and the old woman who came up to help her through her
|
|
trouble stayed on. Presently the granddaughter of the old
|
|
woman came to stay with her, and then a youth appeared -- no
|
|
one quite knew where from or to whom he belonged -- but he
|
|
settled down with them in a happy-go-lucky way, and they all
|
|
lived together,
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter LIII
|
|
|
|
|
|
<i Tenez, voila le Capitaine Brunot>," said Tiare, one day
|
|
when I was fitting together what she could tell me of Strickland.
|
|
"He knew Strickland well; he visited him at his house."
|
|
|
|
I saw a middle-aged Frenchman with a big black beard, streaked
|
|
with gray, a sunburned face, and large, shining eyes. He was
|
|
dressed in a neat suit of ducks. I had noticed him at
|
|
luncheon, and Ah Lin, the Chinese boy, told me he had come
|
|
from the Paumotus on the boat that had that day arrived.
|
|
Tiare introduced me to him, and he handed me his card, a large
|
|
card on which was printed <i Rene Brunot>, and underneath,
|
|
<i Capitaine au Long Cours.> We were sitting on a little
|
|
verandah outside the kitchen, and Tiare was cutting out a
|
|
dress that she was making for one of the girls about the
|
|
house. He sat down with us.
|
|
|
|
"Yes; I knew Strickland well," he said. "I am very fond of
|
|
chess, and he was always glad of a game. I come to Tahiti
|
|
three or four times a year for my business, and when he was at
|
|
Papeete he would come here and we would play. When he
|
|
married" -- Captain Brunot smiled and shrugged his shoulders --
|
|
"<i enfin>, when he went to live with the girl that Tiare
|
|
gave him, he asked me to go and see him. I was one of the
|
|
guests at the wedding feast." He looked at Tiare, and they
|
|
both laughed. "He did not come much to Papeete after that,
|
|
and about a year later it chanced that I had to go to that
|
|
part of the island for I forgot what business, and when I had
|
|
finished it I said to myself: `<i Voyons>, why should I not
|
|
go and see that poor Strickland?' I asked one or two natives
|
|
if they knew anything about him, and I discovered that he
|
|
lived not more than five kilometres from where I was. So I went.
|
|
I shall never forget the impression my visit made on me.
|
|
I live on an atoll, a low island, it is a strip of land
|
|
surrounding a lagoon, and its beauty is the beauty of the sea
|
|
and sky and the varied colour of the lagoon and the grace of
|
|
the cocoa-nut trees; but the place where Strickland lived had
|
|
the beauty of the Garden of Eden. Ah, I wish I could make you
|
|
see the enchantment of that spot, a corner hidden away from
|
|
all the world, with the blue sky overhead and the rich,
|
|
luxuriant trees. It was a feast of colour. And it was
|
|
fragrant and cool. Words cannot describe that paradise.
|
|
And here he lived, unmindful of the world and by the
|
|
world forgotten. I suppose to European eyes it would have
|
|
seemed astonishingly sordid. The house was dilapidated and none
|
|
too clean. Three or four natives were lying on the verandah.
|
|
You know how natives love to herd together. There was a young
|
|
man lying full length, smoking a cigarette, and he wore nothing
|
|
but a <i pareo>"
|
|
|
|
The <i pareo> is a long strip of trade cotton, red or blue,
|
|
stamped with a white pattern. It is worn round the waist and
|
|
hangs to the knees.
|
|
|
|
"A girl of fifteen, perhaps, was plaiting pandanus-leaf to
|
|
make a hat, and an old woman was sitting on her haunches
|
|
smoking a pipe. Then I saw Ata. She was suckling a new-born
|
|
child, and another child, stark naked, was playing at her feet.
|
|
When she saw me she called out to Strickland, and he
|
|
came to the door. He, too, wore nothing but a <i pareo>.
|
|
He was an extraordinary figure, with his red beard and matted
|
|
hair, and his great hairy chest. His feet were horny and
|
|
scarred, so that I knew he went always bare foot. He had gone
|
|
native with a vengeance. He seemed pleased to see me, and
|
|
told Ata to kill a chicken for our dinner. He took me into
|
|
the house to show me the picture he was at work on when I came in.
|
|
In one corner of the room was the bed, and in the middle
|
|
was an easel with the canvas upon it. Because I was sorry for
|
|
him, I had bought a couple of his pictures for small sums, and
|
|
I had sent others to friends of mine in France. And though I
|
|
had bought them out of compassion, after living with them I
|
|
began to like them. Indeed, I found a strange beauty in them.
|
|
Everyone thought I was mad, but it turns out that I was right.
|
|
I was his first admirer in the islands."
|
|
|
|
He smiled maliciously at Tiare, and with lamentations she told
|
|
us again the story of how at the sale of Strickland's effects
|
|
she had neglected the pictures, but bought an American stove
|
|
for twenty-seven francs.
|
|
|
|
"Have you the pictures still?" I asked.
|
|
|
|
"Yes; I am keeping them till my daughter is of marriageable
|
|
age, and then I shall sell them. They will be her <i dot>."
|
|
Then he went on with the account of his visit to Strickland.
|
|
|
|
"I shall never forget the evening I spent with him. I had not
|
|
intended to stay more than an hour, but he insisted that I
|
|
should spend the night. I hesitated, for I confess I did not
|
|
much like the look of the mats on which he proposed that I
|
|
should sleep; but I shrugged my shoulders. When I was
|
|
building my house in the Paumotus I had slept out for weeks on
|
|
a harder bed than that, with nothing to shelter me but wild
|
|
shrubs; and as for vermin, my tough skin should be proof
|
|
against their malice.
|
|
|
|
"We went down to the stream to bathe while Ata was preparing
|
|
the dinner, and after we had eaten it we sat on the verandah.
|
|
We smoked and chatted. The young man had a concertina, and he
|
|
played the tunes popular on the music-halls a dozen years
|
|
before. They sounded strangely in the tropical night
|
|
thousands of miles from civilisation. I asked Strickland if
|
|
it did not irk him to live in that promiscuity. No, he said;
|
|
he liked to have his models under his hand. Presently, after
|
|
loud yawning, the natives went away to sleep, and Strickland
|
|
and I were left alone. I cannot describe to you the intense
|
|
silence of the night. On my island in the Paumotus there is
|
|
never at night the complete stillness that there was here.
|
|
There is the rustle of the myriad animals on the beach, all
|
|
the little shelled things that crawl about ceaselessly, and
|
|
there is the noisy scurrying of the land-crabs. Now and then
|
|
in the lagoon you hear the leaping of a fish, and sometimes a
|
|
hurried noisy splashing as a brown shark sends all the other
|
|
fish scampering for their lives. And above all, ceaseless
|
|
like time, is the dull roar of the breakers on the reef.
|
|
But here there was not a sound, and the air was scented with the
|
|
white flowers of the night. It was a night so beautiful that
|
|
your soul seemed hardly able to bear the prison of the body.
|
|
You felt that it was ready to be wafted away on the immaterial air,
|
|
and death bore all the aspect of a beloved friend."
|
|
|
|
Tiare sighed.
|
|
|
|
"Ah, I wish I were fifteen again."
|
|
|
|
Then she caught sight of a cat trying to get at a dish of
|
|
prawns on the kitchen table, and with a dexterous gesture and
|
|
a lively volley of abuse flung a book at its scampering tail.
|
|
|
|
"I asked him if he was happy with Ata.
|
|
|
|
"`She leaves me alone,' he said. 'She cooks my food and looks
|
|
after her babies. She does what I tell her. She gives me
|
|
what I want from a woman.'
|
|
|
|
"`And do you never regret Europe? Do you not yearn sometimes
|
|
for the light of the streets in Paris or London, the
|
|
companionship of your friends, and equals, <i que sais-je?>
|
|
for theatres and newspapers, and the rumble of omnibuses on
|
|
the cobbled pavements?'
|
|
|
|
"For a long time he was silent. Then he said:
|
|
|
|
"`I shall stay here till I die.'
|
|
|
|
"`But are you never bored or lonely?' I asked.
|
|
|
|
"He chuckled.
|
|
|
|
"`<i Mon pauvre ami>,' he said. `It is evident that you do
|
|
not know what it is to be an artist.'"
|
|
|
|
Capitaine Brunot turned to me with a gentle smile, and there
|
|
was a wonderful look in his dark, kind eyes.
|
|
|
|
"He did me an injustice, for I too know what it is to have
|
|
dreams. I have my visions too. In my way I also am an artist."
|
|
|
|
We were all silent for a while, and Tiare fished out of her
|
|
capacious pocket a handful of cigarettes. She handed one to
|
|
each of us, and we all three smoked. At last she said:
|
|
|
|
"Since <i ce monsieur> is interested in Strickland, why do you
|
|
not take him to see Dr. Coutras? He can tell him something
|
|
about his illness and death."
|
|
|
|
"<i Volontiers>," said the Captain, looking at me.
|
|
|
|
I thanked him, and he looked at his watch.
|
|
|
|
"It is past six o'clock. We should find him at home if you
|
|
care to come now."
|
|
|
|
I got up without further ado, and we walked along the road
|
|
that led to the doctor's house. He lived out of the town,
|
|
but the Hotel de la Fleur was on the edge of it, and we were
|
|
quickly in the country. The broad road was shaded by pepper-trees,
|
|
and on each side were the plantations, cocoa-nut and vanilla.
|
|
The pirate birds were screeching among the leaves of the palms.
|
|
We came to a stone bridge over a shallow river,
|
|
and we stopped for a few minutes to see the native boys bathing.
|
|
They chased one another with shrill cries and laughter,
|
|
and their bodies, brown and wet, gleamed in the sunlight.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter LIV
|
|
|
|
|
|
As we walked along I reflected on a circumstance which all
|
|
that I had lately heard about Strickland forced on my attention.
|
|
Here, on this remote island, he seemed to have aroused
|
|
none of the detestation with which he was regarded at home,
|
|
but compassion rather; and his vagaries were accepted
|
|
with tolerance. To these people, native and European, he was
|
|
a queer fish, but they were used to queer fish, and they took
|
|
him for granted; the world was full of odd persons, who did
|
|
odd things; and perhaps they knew that a man is not what he
|
|
wants to be, but what he must be. In England and France he
|
|
was the square peg in the round hole, but here the holes were
|
|
any sort of shape, and no sort of peg was quite amiss.
|
|
I do not think he was any gentler here, less selfish or less
|
|
brutal, but the circumstances were more favourable. If he had
|
|
spent his life amid these surroundings he might have passed
|
|
for no worse a man than another. He received here what he
|
|
neither expected nor wanted among his own people -- sympathy.
|
|
|
|
I tried to tell Captain Brunot something of the astonishment
|
|
with which this filled me, and for a little while he did not
|
|
answer.
|
|
|
|
"It is not strange that I, at all events, should have had
|
|
sympathy for him," he said at last, "for, though perhaps
|
|
neither of us knew it, we were both aiming at the same thing."
|
|
|
|
"What on earth can it be that two people so dissimilar as you
|
|
and Strickland could aim at?" I asked, smiling.
|
|
|
|
"Beauty."
|
|
|
|
"A large order," I murmured.
|
|
|
|
"Do you know how men can be so obsessed by love that they are
|
|
deaf and blind to everything else in the world? They are as
|
|
little their own masters as the slaves chained to the benches
|
|
of a galley. The passion that held Strickland in bondage was
|
|
no less tyrannical than love."
|
|
|
|
"How strange that you should say that!" I answered. "For long
|
|
ago I had the idea that he was possessed of a devil."
|
|
|
|
"And the passion that held Strickland was a passion to
|
|
create beauty. It gave him no peace. It urged him hither
|
|
and thither. He was eternally a pilgrim, haunted by a divine
|
|
nostalgia, and the demon within him was ruthless. There are
|
|
men whose desire for truth is so great that to attain it they
|
|
will shatter the very foundation of their world. Of such was
|
|
Strickland, only beauty with him took the place of truth.
|
|
I could only feel for him a profound compassion."
|
|
|
|
"That is strange also. A man whom he had deeply wronged told
|
|
me that he felt a great pity for him." I was silent for a moment.
|
|
"I wonder if there you have found the explanation of
|
|
a character which has always seemed to me inexplicable.
|
|
How did you hit on it?"
|
|
|
|
He turned to me with a smile.
|
|
|
|
"Did I not tell you that I, too, in my way was an artist?
|
|
I realised in myself the same desire as animated him.
|
|
But whereas his medium was paint, mine has been life."
|
|
|
|
Then Captain Brunot told me a story which I must repeat,
|
|
since, if only by way of contrast, it adds something to my
|
|
impression of Strickland. It has also to my mind a beauty of
|
|
its own.
|
|
|
|
Captain Brunot was a Breton, and had been in the French Navy.
|
|
He left it on his marriage, and settled down on a small
|
|
property he had near Quimper to live for the rest of his days
|
|
in peace; but the failure of an attorney left him suddenly
|
|
penniless, and neither he nor his wife was willing to live in
|
|
penury where they had enjoyed consideration. During his sea
|
|
faring days he had cruised the South Seas, and he determined
|
|
now to seek his fortune there. He spent some months in Papeete
|
|
to make his plans and gain experience; then, on money borrowed
|
|
from a friend in France, he bought an island in the Paumotus.
|
|
It was a ring of land round a deep lagoon, uninhabited,
|
|
and covered only with scrub and wild guava. With the
|
|
intrepid woman who was his wife, and a few natives,
|
|
he landed there, and set about building a house, and clearing
|
|
the scrub so that he could plant cocoa-nuts. That was twenty
|
|
years before, and now what had been a barren island was a garden.
|
|
|
|
"It was hard and anxious work at first, and we worked
|
|
strenuously, both of us. Every day I was up at dawn,
|
|
clearing, planting, working on my house, and at night when I
|
|
threw myself on my bed it was to sleep like a log till
|
|
morning. My wife worked as hard as I did. Then children were
|
|
born to us, first a son and then a daughter. My wife and I
|
|
have taught them all they know. We had a piano sent out from
|
|
France, and she has taught them to play and to speak English,
|
|
and I have taught them Latin and mathematics, and we read
|
|
history together. They can sail a boat. They can swim as
|
|
well as the natives. There is nothing about the land of which
|
|
they are ignorant. Our trees have prospered, and there is
|
|
shell on my reef. I have come to Tahiti now to buy a
|
|
schooner. I can get enough shell to make it worth while to
|
|
fish for it, and, who knows? I may find pearls. I have made
|
|
something where there was nothing. I too have made beauty.
|
|
Ah, you do not know what it is to look at those tall, healthy
|
|
trees and think that every one I planted myself."
|
|
|
|
"Let me ask you the question that you asked Strickland.
|
|
Do you never regret France and your old home in Brittany?"
|
|
|
|
"Some day, when my daughter is married and my son has a wife
|
|
and is able to take my place on the island, we shall go back
|
|
and finish our days in the old house in which I was born."
|
|
|
|
"You will look back on a happy life," I said.
|
|
|
|
"<i Evidemment>, it is not exciting on my island, and we are
|
|
very far from the world -- imagine, it takes me four days to
|
|
come to Tahiti -- but we are happy there. It is given to few
|
|
men to attempt a work and to achieve it. Our life is simple
|
|
and innocent. We are untouched by ambition, and what pride we
|
|
have is due only to our contemplation of the work of our
|
|
hands. Malice cannot touch us, nor envy attack. Ah, <i mon
|
|
cher monsieur>, they talk of the blessedness of labour, and it
|
|
is a meaningless phrase, but to me it has the most intense
|
|
significance. I am a happy man."
|
|
|
|
"I am sure you deserve to be," I smiled.
|
|
|
|
"I wish I could think so. I do not know how I have deserved
|
|
to have a wife who was the perfect friend and helpmate,
|
|
the perfect mistress and the perfect mother."
|
|
|
|
I reflected for a while on the life that the Captain suggested
|
|
to my imagination.
|
|
|
|
"It is obvious that to lead such an existence and make so
|
|
great a success of it, you must both have needed a strong will
|
|
and a determined character."
|
|
|
|
"Perhaps; but without one other factor we could have achieved nothing."
|
|
|
|
"And what was that?"
|
|
|
|
He stopped, somewhat dramatically, and stretched out his arm.
|
|
|
|
"Belief in God. Without that we should have been lost."
|
|
|
|
Then we arrived at the house of Dr. Coutras.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter LV
|
|
|
|
|
|
Mr. Coutras was an old Frenchman of great stature and
|
|
exceeding bulk. His body was shaped like a huge duck's egg;
|
|
and his eyes, sharp, blue, and good-natured, rested now and
|
|
then with self-satisfaction on his enormous paunch. His
|
|
complexion was florid and his hair white. He was a man to
|
|
attract immediate sympathy. He received us in a room that
|
|
might have been in a house in a provincial town in France, and
|
|
the one or two Polynesian curios had an odd look. He took my
|
|
hand in both of his -- they were huge -- and gave me a hearty
|
|
look, in which, however, was great shrewdness. When he shook
|
|
hands with Capitaine Brunot he enquired politely after
|
|
<i Madame et les enfants>. For some minutes there was an
|
|
exchange of courtesies and some local gossip about the island,
|
|
the prospects of copra and the vanilla crop; then we came to
|
|
the object of my visit.
|
|
|
|
I shall not tell what Dr. Coutras related to me in his words,
|
|
but in my own, for I cannot hope to give at second hand any
|
|
impression of his vivacious delivery. He had a deep, resonant
|
|
voice, fitted to his massive frame, and a keen sense of the
|
|
dramatic. To listen to him was, as the phrase goes, as good
|
|
as a play; and much better than most.
|
|
|
|
It appears that Dr. Coutras had gone one day to Taravao in
|
|
order to see an old chiefess who was ill, and he gave a vivid
|
|
picture of the obese old lady, lying in a huge bed, smoking
|
|
cigarettes, and surrounded by a crowd of dark-skinned retainers.
|
|
When he had seen her he was taken into another room
|
|
and given dinner -- raw fish, fried bananas, and chicken --
|
|
<i que sais-je>, the typical dinner of the <i indigene> --
|
|
and while he was eating it he saw a young girl being driven
|
|
away from the door in tears. He thought nothing of it, but
|
|
when he went out to get into his trap and drive home, he saw
|
|
her again, standing a little way off; she looked at him with a
|
|
woebegone air, and tears streamed down her cheeks. He asked
|
|
someone what was wrong with her, and was told that she had
|
|
come down from the hills to ask him to visit a white man who
|
|
was sick. They had told her that the doctor could not be
|
|
disturbed. He called her, and himself asked what she wanted.
|
|
She told him that Ata had sent her, she who used to be at the
|
|
Hotel de la Fleur, and that the Red One was ill. She thrust
|
|
into his hand a crumpled piece of newspaper, and when he
|
|
opened it he found in it a hundred-franc note.
|
|
|
|
"Who is the Red One?" he asked of one of the bystanders.
|
|
|
|
He was told that that was what they called the Englishman, a
|
|
painter, who lived with Ata up in the valley seven kilometres
|
|
from where they were. He recognised Strickland by the
|
|
description. But it was necessary to walk. It was impossible
|
|
for him to go; that was why they had sent the girl away.
|
|
|
|
"I confess," said the doctor, turning to me, "that I
|
|
hesitated. I did not relish fourteen kilometres over a bad
|
|
pathway, and there was no chance that I could get back to
|
|
Papeete that night. Besides, Strickland was not sympathetic
|
|
to me. He was an idle, useless scoundrel, who preferred to
|
|
live with a native woman rather than work for his living like
|
|
the rest of us. <i Mon Dieu>, how was I to know that one day
|
|
the world would come to the conclusion that he had genius?
|
|
I asked the girl if he was not well enough to have come down to
|
|
see me. I asked her what she thought was the matter with him.
|
|
She would not answer. I pressed her, angrily perhaps, but she
|
|
looked down on the ground and began to cry. Then I shrugged
|
|
my shoulders; after all, perhaps it was my duty to go, and in
|
|
a very bad temper I bade her lead the way."
|
|
|
|
His temper was certainly no better when he arrived, perspiring
|
|
freely and thirsty. Ata was on the look-out for him, and came
|
|
a little way along the path to meet him.
|
|
|
|
"Before I see anyone give me something to drink or I shall die
|
|
of thirst," he cried out. "<i Pour l'amour de Dieu>, get me a
|
|
cocoa-nut."
|
|
|
|
She called out, and a boy came running along. He swarmed up a
|
|
tree, and presently threw down a ripe nut. Ata pierced a hole
|
|
in it, and the doctor took a long, refreshing draught.
|
|
Then he rolled himself a cigarette and felt in a better humour.
|
|
|
|
"Now, where is the Red One?" he asked.
|
|
|
|
"He is in the house, painting. I have not told him you were
|
|
coming. Go in and see him."
|
|
|
|
"But what does he complain of? If he is well enough to paint,
|
|
he is well enough to have come down to Taravao and save me
|
|
this confounded walk. I presume my time is no less valuable
|
|
than his."
|
|
|
|
Ata did not speak, but with the boy followed him to the house.
|
|
The girl who had brought him was by this time sitting on the
|
|
verandah, and here was lying an old woman, with her back to
|
|
the wall, making native cigarettes. Ata pointed to the door.
|
|
The doctor, wondering irritably why they behaved so strangely,
|
|
entered, and there found Strickland cleaning his palette.
|
|
There was a picture on the easel. Strickland, clad only in a
|
|
<i pareo>, was standing with his back to the door, but he
|
|
turned round when he heard the sound of boots. He gave the
|
|
doctor a look of vexation. He was surprised to see him, and
|
|
resented the intrusion. But the doctor gave a gasp, he was
|
|
rooted to the floor, and he stared with all his eyes.
|
|
This was not what he expected. He was seized with horror.
|
|
|
|
"You enter without ceremony," said Strickland. "What can I do
|
|
for you?"
|
|
|
|
The doctor recovered himself, but it required quite an effort
|
|
for him to find his voice. All his irritation was gone, and
|
|
he felt -- <i eh bien, oui, je ne le nie pas> -- he felt an
|
|
overwhelming pity.
|
|
|
|
"I am Dr. Coutras. I was down at Taravao to see the chiefess,
|
|
and Ata sent for me to see you."
|
|
|
|
"She's a damned fool. I have had a few aches and pains lately
|
|
and a little fever, but that's nothing; it will pass off.
|
|
Next time anyone went to Papeete I was going to send for
|
|
some quinine."
|
|
|
|
"Look at yourself in the glass."
|
|
|
|
Strickland gave him a glance, smiled, and went over to a cheap
|
|
mirror in a little wooden frame, that hung on the wall.
|
|
|
|
"Well?"
|
|
|
|
"Do you not see a strange change in your face? Do you not see
|
|
the thickening of your features and a look -- how shall I
|
|
describe it? -- the books call it lion-faced. <i Mon pauvre ami>,
|
|
must I tell you that you have a terrible disease?"
|
|
|
|
"I?"
|
|
|
|
"When you look at yourself in the glass you see the typical
|
|
appearance of the leper."
|
|
|
|
"You are jesting," said Strickland.
|
|
|
|
"I wish to God I were."
|
|
|
|
"Do you intend to tell me that I have leprosy?"
|
|
|
|
"Unfortunately, there can be no doubt of it."
|
|
|
|
Dr. Coutras had delivered sentence of death on many men, and
|
|
he could never overcome the horror with which it filled him.
|
|
He felt always the furious hatred that must seize a man
|
|
condemned when he compared himself with the doctor, sane and
|
|
healthy, who had the inestimable privilege of life.
|
|
Strickland looked at him in silence. Nothing of emotion could
|
|
be seen on his face, disfigured already by the loathsome
|
|
disease.
|
|
|
|
"Do they know?" he asked at last, pointing to the persons on
|
|
the verandah, now sitting in unusual, unaccountable silence.
|
|
|
|
"These natives know the signs so well," said the doctor.
|
|
"They were afraid to tell you."
|
|
|
|
Strickland stepped to the door and looked out. There must
|
|
have been something terrible in his face, for suddenly they
|
|
all burst out into loud cries and lamentation. They lifted up
|
|
their voices and they wept. Strickland did not speak.
|
|
After looking at them for a moment, he came back into the room.
|
|
|
|
"How long do you think I can last?"
|
|
|
|
"Who knows? Sometimes the disease continues for twenty years.
|
|
It is a mercy when it runs its course quickly."
|
|
|
|
Strickland went to his easel and looked reflectively at the
|
|
picture that stood on it.
|
|
|
|
"You have had a long journey. It is fitting that the bearer
|
|
of important tidings should be rewarded. Take this picture.
|
|
It means nothing to you now, but it may be that one day you
|
|
will be glad to have it."
|
|
|
|
Dr. Coutras protested that he needed no payment for his
|
|
journey; he had already given back to Ata the hundred-franc
|
|
note, but Strickland insisted that he should take the picture.
|
|
Then together they went out on the verandah. The natives were
|
|
sobbing violently. "Be quiet, woman. Dry thy tears," said
|
|
Strickland, addressing Ata. "There is no great harm.
|
|
I shall leave thee very soon."
|
|
|
|
"They are not going to take thee away?" she cried.
|
|
|
|
At that time there was no rigid sequestration on the islands,
|
|
and lepers, if they chose, were allowed to go free.
|
|
|
|
"I shall go up into the mountain," said Strickland.
|
|
|
|
Then Ata stood up and faced him.
|
|
|
|
"Let the others go if they choose, but I will not leave thee.
|
|
Thou art my man and I am thy woman. If thou leavest me I
|
|
shall hang myself on the tree that is behind the house.
|
|
I swear it by God."
|
|
|
|
There was something immensely forcible in the way she spoke.
|
|
She was no longer the meek, soft native girl, but a determined
|
|
woman. She was extraordinarily transformed.
|
|
|
|
"Why shouldst thou stay with me? Thou canst go back to
|
|
Papeete, and thou wilt soon find another white man. The old
|
|
woman can take care of thy children, and Tiare will be glad to
|
|
have thee back."
|
|
|
|
"Thou art my man and I am thy woman. Whither thou goest I
|
|
will go, too."
|
|
|
|
For a moment Strickland's fortitude was shaken, and a tear
|
|
filled each of his eyes and trickled slowly down his cheeks.
|
|
Then he gave the sardonic smile which was usual with him.
|
|
|
|
"Women are strange little beasts," he said to Dr. Coutras.
|
|
"You can treat them like dogs, you can beat them till your arm
|
|
aches, and still they love you." He shrugged his shoulders.
|
|
"Of course, it is one of the most absurd illusions of
|
|
Christianity that they have souls."
|
|
|
|
"What is it that thou art saying to the doctor?" asked Ata
|
|
suspiciously. "Thou wilt not go?"
|
|
|
|
"If it please thee I will stay, poor child."
|
|
|
|
Ata flung herself on her knees before him, and clasped his
|
|
legs with her arms and kissed them. Strickland looked at Dr.
|
|
Coutras with a faint smile.
|
|
|
|
"In the end they get you, and you are helpless in their hands.
|
|
White or brown, they are all the same."
|
|
|
|
Dr. Coutras felt that it was absurd to offer expressions of
|
|
regret in so terrible a disaster, and he took his leave.
|
|
Strickland told Tane, the boy, to lead him to the village.
|
|
Dr. Coutras paused for a moment, and then he addressed himself
|
|
to me.
|
|
|
|
"I did not like him, I have told you he was not sympathetic to
|
|
me, but as I walked slowly down to Taravao I could not prevent
|
|
an unwilling admiration for the stoical courage which enabled
|
|
him to bear perhaps the most dreadful of human afflictions.
|
|
When Tane left me I told him I would send some medicine that
|
|
might be of service; but my hope was small that Strickland
|
|
would consent to take it, and even smaller that, if he did,
|
|
it would do him good. I gave the boy a message for Ata that
|
|
I would come whenever she sent for me. Life is hard, and Nature
|
|
takes sometimes a terrible delight in torturing her children.
|
|
It was with a heavy heart that I drove back to my comfortable
|
|
home in Papeete."
|
|
|
|
For a long time none of us spoke.
|
|
|
|
"But Ata did not send for me," the doctor went on, at last,
|
|
"and it chanced that I did not go to that part of the island
|
|
for a long time. I had no news of Strickland. Once or twice
|
|
I heard that Ata had been to Papeete to buy painting
|
|
materials, but I did not happen to see her. More than two
|
|
years passed before I went to Taravao again, and then it was
|
|
once more to see the old chiefess. I asked them whether they
|
|
had heard anything of Strickland. By now it was known
|
|
everywhere that he had leprosy. First Tane, the boy, had left
|
|
the house, and then, a little time afterwards, the old woman
|
|
and her grandchild. Strickland and Ata were left alone with
|
|
their babies. No one went near the plantation, for, as you
|
|
know, the natives have a very lively horror of the disease,
|
|
and in the old days when it was discovered the sufferer was killed;
|
|
but sometimes, when the village boys were scrambling about
|
|
the hills, they would catch sight of the white man, with
|
|
his great red beard, wandering about. They fled in terror.
|
|
Sometimes Ata would come down to the village at night and
|
|
arouse the trader, so that he might sell her various things of
|
|
which she stood in need. She knew that the natives looked
|
|
upon her with the same horrified aversion as they looked upon
|
|
Strickland, and she kept out of their way. Once some women,
|
|
venturing nearer than usual to the plantation, saw her
|
|
washing clothes in the brook, and they threw stones at her.
|
|
After that the trader was told to give her the message that if
|
|
she used the brook again men would come and burn down her house."
|
|
|
|
"Brutes," I said.
|
|
|
|
"<i Mais non, mon cher monsieur>, men are always the same.
|
|
Fear makes them cruel.... I decided to see Strickland, and
|
|
when I had finished with the chiefess asked for a boy to show
|
|
me the way. But none would accompany me, and I was forced to
|
|
find it alone."
|
|
|
|
When Dr. Coutras arrived at the plantation he was seized with
|
|
a feeling of uneasiness. Though he was hot from walking, he
|
|
shivered. There was something hostile in the air which made
|
|
him hesitate, and he felt that invisible forces barred his way.
|
|
Unseen hands seemed to draw him back. No one would go
|
|
near now to gather the cocoa-nuts, and they lay rotting on the
|
|
ground. Everywhere was desolation. The bush was encroaching,
|
|
and it looked as though very soon the primeval forest would
|
|
regain possession of that strip of land which had been
|
|
snatched from it at the cost of so much labour. He had the
|
|
sensation that here was the abode of pain. As he approached
|
|
the house he was struck by the unearthly silence, and at first
|
|
he thought it was deserted. Then he saw Ata. She was sitting
|
|
on her haunches in the lean-to that served her as kitchen,
|
|
watching some mess cooking in a pot. Near her a small boy was
|
|
playing silently in the dirt. She did not smile when she saw him.
|
|
|
|
"I have come to see Strickland," he said.
|
|
|
|
"I will go and tell him."
|
|
|
|
She went to the house, ascended the few steps that led to the
|
|
verandah, and entered. Dr. Coutras followed her, but waited
|
|
outside in obedience to her gesture. As she opened the door
|
|
he smelt the sickly sweet smell which makes the neighbourhood
|
|
of the leper nauseous. He heard her speak, and then he heard
|
|
Strickland's answer, but he did not recognise the voice.
|
|
It had become hoarse and indistinct. Dr. Coutras raised his
|
|
eyebrows. He judged that the disease had already attacked the
|
|
vocal chords. Then Ata came out again.
|
|
|
|
"He will not see you. You must go away."
|
|
|
|
Dr. Coutras insisted, but she would not let him pass. Dr. Coutras
|
|
shrugged his shoulders, and after a moment's rejection turned away.
|
|
She walked with him. He felt that she too wanted to be rid of him.
|
|
|
|
"Is there nothing I can do at all?" he asked.
|
|
|
|
"You can send him some paints," she said. "There is nothing
|
|
else he wants."
|
|
|
|
"Can he paint still?"
|
|
|
|
"He is painting the walls of the house."
|
|
|
|
"This is a terrible life for you, my poor child."
|
|
|
|
Then at last she smiled, and there was in her eyes a look of
|
|
superhuman love. Dr. Coutras was startled by it, and amazed.
|
|
And he was awed. He found nothing to say.
|
|
|
|
"He is my man," she said.
|
|
|
|
"Where is your other child?" he asked. "When I was here last
|
|
you had two."
|
|
|
|
"Yes; it died. We buried it under the mango."
|
|
|
|
When Ata had gone with him a little way she said she must turn
|
|
back. Dr. Coutras surmised she was afraid to go farther in
|
|
case she met any of the people from the village. He told her
|
|
again that if she wanted him she had only to send and he would
|
|
come at once.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter LVI
|
|
|
|
|
|
Then two years more went by, or perhaps three, for time passes
|
|
imperceptibly in Tahiti, and it is hard to keep count of it;
|
|
but at last a message was brought to Dr. Coutras that
|
|
Strickland was dying. Ata had waylaid the cart that took the
|
|
mail into Papeete, and besought the man who drove it to go at
|
|
once to the doctor. But the doctor was out when the summons
|
|
came, and it was evening when he received it. It was
|
|
impossible to start at so late an hour, and so it was not till
|
|
next day soon after dawn that he set out. He arrived at
|
|
Taravao, and for the last time tramped the seven kilometres
|
|
that led to Ata's house. The path was overgrown, and it was
|
|
clear that for years now it had remained all but untrodden.
|
|
It was not easy to find the way. Sometimes he had to stumble
|
|
along the bed of the stream, and sometimes he had to push
|
|
through shrubs, dense and thorny; often he was obliged to
|
|
climb over rocks in order to avoid the hornet-nests that hung
|
|
on the trees over his head. The silence was intense.
|
|
|
|
It was with a sigh of relief that at last he came upon the
|
|
little unpainted house, extraordinarily bedraggled now,
|
|
and unkempt; but here too was the same intolerable silence.
|
|
He walked up, and a little boy, playing unconcernedly in the
|
|
sunshine, started at his approach and fled quickly away:
|
|
to him the stranger was the enemy. Dr. Coutras had a sense that
|
|
the child was stealthily watching him from behind a tree.
|
|
The door was wide open. He called out, but no one answered.
|
|
He stepped in. He knocked at a door, but again there was no
|
|
answer. He turned the handle and entered. The stench that
|
|
assailed him turned him horribly sick. He put his
|
|
handkerchief to his nose and forced himself to go in. The
|
|
light was dim, and after the brilliant sunshine for a while he
|
|
could see nothing. Then he gave a start. He could not make
|
|
out where he was. He seemed on a sudden to have entered a
|
|
magic world. He had a vague impression of a great primeval
|
|
forest and of naked people walking beneath the trees. Then he
|
|
saw that there were paintings on the walls.
|
|
|
|
"<i Mon Dieu>, I hope the sun hasn't affected me," he muttered.
|
|
|
|
A slight movement attracted his attention, and he saw that Ata
|
|
was lying on the floor, sobbing quietly.
|
|
|
|
"Ata," he called. "Ata."
|
|
|
|
She took no notice. Again the beastly stench almost made him
|
|
faint, and he lit a cheroot. His eyes grew accustomed to the
|
|
darkness, and now he was seized by an overwhelming sensation
|
|
as he stared at the painted walls. He knew nothing of
|
|
pictures, but there was something about these that
|
|
extraordinarily affected him. From floor to ceiling the walls
|
|
were covered with a strange and elaborate composition. It was
|
|
indescribably wonderful and mysterious. It took his breath away.
|
|
It filled him with an emotion which he could not
|
|
understand or analyse. He felt the awe and the delight which
|
|
a man might feel who watched the beginning of a world. It was
|
|
tremendous, sensual, passionate; and yet there was something
|
|
horrible there, too, something which made him afraid. It was
|
|
the work of a man who had delved into the hidden depths of
|
|
nature and had discovered secrets which were beautiful and
|
|
fearful too. It was the work of a man who knew things which
|
|
it is unholy for men to know. There was something primeval
|
|
there and terrible. It was not human. It brought to his mind
|
|
vague recollections of black magic. It was beautiful and obscene.
|
|
|
|
"<i Mon Dieu>, this is genius."
|
|
|
|
The words were wrung from him, and he did not know he had spoken.
|
|
|
|
Then his eyes fell on the bed of mats in the corner, and he
|
|
went up, and he saw the dreadful, mutilated, ghastly object
|
|
which had been Strickland. He was dead. Dr. Coutras made an
|
|
effort of will and bent over that battered horror. Then he
|
|
started violently, and terror blazed in his heart, for he felt
|
|
that someone was behind him. It was Ata. He had not heard
|
|
her get up. She was standing at his elbow, looking at what
|
|
he looked at.
|
|
|
|
"Good Heavens, my nerves are all distraught," he said.
|
|
"You nearly frightened me out of my wits."
|
|
|
|
He looked again at the poor dead thing that had been man, and
|
|
then he started back in dismay.
|
|
|
|
"But he was blind."
|
|
|
|
"Yes; he had been blind for nearly a year."
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter LVII
|
|
|
|
|
|
AT that moment we were interrupted by the appearance of
|
|
Madame Coutras, who had been paying visits. She came in,
|
|
like a ship in full sail, an imposing creature, tall and stout,
|
|
with an ample bust and an obesity girthed in alarmingly by
|
|
straight-fronted corsets. She had a bold hooked nose and three chins.
|
|
She held herself upright. She had not yielded for an instant
|
|
to the enervating charm of the tropics, but contrariwise was
|
|
more active, more worldly, more decided than anyone in a
|
|
temperate clime would have thought it possible to be. She was
|
|
evidently a copious talker, and now poured forth a breathless
|
|
stream of anecdote and comment. She made the conversation we
|
|
had just had seem far away and unreal.
|
|
|
|
Presently Dr. Coutras turned to me.
|
|
|
|
"I still have in my <i bureau> the picture that Strickland
|
|
gave me," he said. "Would you like to see it?"
|
|
|
|
"Willingly."
|
|
|
|
We got up, and he led me on to the verandah which surrounded
|
|
his house. We paused to look at the gay flowers that rioted
|
|
in his garden.
|
|
|
|
"For a long time I could not get out of my head the
|
|
recollection of the extraordinary decoration with which
|
|
Strickland had covered the walls of his house," he said
|
|
reflectively.
|
|
|
|
I had been thinking of it, too. It seemed to me that here
|
|
Strickland had finally put the whole expression of himself.
|
|
Working silently, knowing that it was his last chance, I
|
|
fancied that here he must have said all that he knew of life
|
|
and all that he divined. And I fancied that perhaps here he
|
|
had at last found peace. The demon which possessed him was
|
|
exorcised at last, and with the completion of the work, for
|
|
which all his life had been a painful preparation, rest
|
|
descended on his remote and tortured soul. He was willing to
|
|
die, for he had fulfilled his purpose.
|
|
|
|
"What was the subject?" I asked.
|
|
|
|
"I scarcely know. It was strange and fantastic. It was a
|
|
vision of the beginnings of the world, the Garden of Eden,
|
|
with Adam and Eve -- <i que sais-je?> -- it was a hymn to the
|
|
beauty of the human form, male and female, and the praise of
|
|
Nature, sublime, indifferent, lovely, and cruel. It gave you
|
|
an awful sense of the infinity of space and of the endlessness
|
|
of time. Because he painted the trees I see about me every
|
|
day, the cocoa-nuts, the banyans, the flamboyants, the
|
|
alligator-pears, I have seen them ever since differently, as
|
|
though there were in them a spirit and a mystery which I am
|
|
ever on the point of seizing and which forever escapes me.
|
|
The colours were the colours familiar to me, and yet they
|
|
were different. They had a significance which was all their own.
|
|
And those nude men and women. They were of the earth, and yet
|
|
apart from it. They seemed to possess something of the clay
|
|
of which they were created, and at the same time something divine.
|
|
You saw man in the nakedness of his primeval instincts,
|
|
and you were afraid, for you saw yourself."
|
|
|
|
Dr. Coutras shrugged his shoulders and smiled.
|
|
|
|
"You will laugh at me. I am a materialist, and I am a gross,
|
|
fat man -- Falstaff, eh? -- the lyrical mode does not become me.
|
|
I make myself ridiculous. But I have never seen painting
|
|
which made so deep an impression upon me. <i Tenez>, I had just
|
|
the same feeling as when I went to the Sistine Chapel in Rome.
|
|
There too I was awed by the greatness of the man who
|
|
had painted that ceiling. It was genius, and it was
|
|
stupendous and overwhelming. I felt small and insignificant.
|
|
But you are prepared for the greatness of Michael Angelo.
|
|
Nothing had prepared me for the immense surprise of these
|
|
pictures in a native hut, far away from civilisation, in a
|
|
fold of the mountain above Taravao. And Michael Angelo is
|
|
sane and healthy. Those great works of his have the calm of
|
|
the sublime; but here, notwithstanding beauty, was something
|
|
troubling. I do not know what it was. It made me uneasy.
|
|
It gave me the impression you get when you are sitting next door
|
|
to a room that you know is empty, but in which, you know not
|
|
why, you have a dreadful consciousness that notwithstanding
|
|
there is someone. You scold yourself; you know it is only
|
|
your nerves -- and yet, and yet... In a little while it is
|
|
impossible to resist the terror that seizes you, and you are
|
|
helpless in the clutch of an unseen horror. Yes; I confess I
|
|
was not altogether sorry when I heard that those strange
|
|
masterpieces had been destroyed."
|
|
|
|
"Destroyed?" I cried.
|
|
|
|
"<i Mais oui>; did you not know?"
|
|
|
|
"How should I know? It is true I had never heard of this work;
|
|
but I thought perhaps it had fallen into the hands of a
|
|
private owner. Even now there is no certain list of
|
|
Strickland's paintings."
|
|
|
|
"When he grew blind he would sit hour after hour in those two
|
|
rooms that he had painted, looking at his works with sightless
|
|
eyes, and seeing, perhaps, more than he had ever seen in his
|
|
life before. Ata told me that he never complained of his
|
|
fate, he never lost courage. To the end his mind remained
|
|
serene and undisturbed. But he made her promise that when she
|
|
had buried him -- did I tell you that I dug his grave with my
|
|
own hands, for none of the natives would approach the infected
|
|
house, and we buried him, she and I, sewn up in three
|
|
<i pareos> joined together, under the mango-tree -- he made her
|
|
promise that she would set fire to the house and not leave it
|
|
till it was burned to the ground and not a stick remained."
|
|
|
|
I did not speak for a while, for I was thinking. Then I said:
|
|
|
|
"He remained the same to the end, then."
|
|
|
|
"Do you understand? I must tell you that I thought it my duty
|
|
to dissuade her."
|
|
|
|
"Even after what you have just said?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes; for I knew that here was a work of genius, and I did not
|
|
think we had the right to deprive the world of it. But Ata
|
|
would not listen to me. She had promised. I would not stay
|
|
to witness the barbarous deed, and it was only afterwards that
|
|
I heard what she had done. She poured paraffin on the dry
|
|
floors and on the pandanus-mats, and then she set fire. In a
|
|
little while nothing remained but smouldering embers, and a
|
|
great masterpiece existed no longer.
|
|
|
|
"I think Strickland knew it was a masterpiece. He had
|
|
achieved what he wanted. His life was complete. He had made
|
|
a world and saw that it was good. Then, in pride and
|
|
contempt, he destroyed, it."
|
|
|
|
"But I must show you my picture," said Dr. Coutras, moving on.
|
|
|
|
"What happened to Ata and the child?"
|
|
|
|
They went to the Marquesas. She had relations there. I have
|
|
heard that the boy works on one of Cameron's schooners.
|
|
They say he is very like his father in appearance."
|
|
|
|
At the door that led from the verandah to the doctor's
|
|
consulting-room, he paused and smiled.
|
|
|
|
"It is a fruit-piece. You would think it not a very suitable
|
|
picture for a doctor's consulting-room, but my wife will not
|
|
have it in the drawing-room. She says it is frankly obscene."
|
|
|
|
"A fruit-piece!" I exclaimed in surprise.
|
|
|
|
We entered the room, and my eyes fell at once on the picture.
|
|
I looked at it for a long time.
|
|
|
|
It was a pile of mangoes, bananas, oranges, and I know not
|
|
what. and at first sight it was an innocent picture enough.
|
|
It would have been passed in an exhibition of the Post-
|
|
Impressionists by a careless person as an excellent but not
|
|
very remarkable example of the school; but perhaps afterwards
|
|
it would come back to his recollection, and he would wonder
|
|
why. I do not think then he could ever entirely forget it.
|
|
|
|
The colours were so strange that words can hardly tell what a
|
|
troubling emotion they gave. They were sombre blues, opaque
|
|
like a delicately carved bowl in lapis lazuli, and yet with a
|
|
quivering lustre that suggested the palpitation of mysterious
|
|
life; there were purples, horrible like raw and putrid flesh,
|
|
and yet with a glowing, sensual passion that called up vague
|
|
memories of the Roman Empire of Heliogabalus; there were reds,
|
|
shrill like the berries of holly -- one thought of Christmas
|
|
in England, and the snow, the good cheer, and the pleasure of
|
|
children -- and yet by some magic softened till they had the
|
|
swooning tenderness of a dove's breast; there were deep
|
|
yellows that died with an unnatural passion into a green as
|
|
fragrant as the spring and as pure as the sparkling water of a
|
|
mountain brook. Who can tell what anguished fancy made these
|
|
fruits? They belonged to a Polynesian garden of the Hesperides.
|
|
There was something strangely alive in them, as though
|
|
they were created in a stage of the earth's dark history
|
|
when things were not irrevocably fixed to their forms.
|
|
They were extravagantly luxurious. They were heavy with
|
|
tropical odours. They seemed to possess a sombre passion of
|
|
their own. It was enchanted fruit, to taste which might open
|
|
the gateway to God knows what secrets of the soul and to
|
|
mysterious palaces of the imagination. They were sullen with
|
|
unawaited dangers, and to eat them might turn a man to beast
|
|
or god. All that was healthy and natural, all that clung to
|
|
happy relationships and the simple joys of simple men, shrunk
|
|
from them in dismay; and yet a fearful attraction was in them,
|
|
and, like the fruit on the Tree of the Knowledge of Good and
|
|
Evil they were terrible with the possibilities of the Unknown.
|
|
|
|
At last I turned away. I felt that Strickland had kept his
|
|
secret to the grave.
|
|
|
|
"<i Voyons, Rene, mon ami>," came the loud, cheerful voice of
|
|
Madame Coutras, "what are you doing all this time? Here are
|
|
the <i aperitifs>. Ask <i Monsieur> if he will not drink a
|
|
little glass of Quinquina Dubonnet."
|
|
|
|
"<i Volontiers>, Madame," I said, going out on to the verandah.
|
|
|
|
The spell was broken.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Chapter LVIII
|
|
|
|
|
|
The time came for my departure from Tahiti. According to the
|
|
gracious custom of the island, presents were given me by the
|
|
persons with whom I had been thrown in contact -- baskets made
|
|
of the leaves of the cocoa-nut tree, mats of pandanus, fans;
|
|
and Tiare gave me three little pearls and three jars of
|
|
guava-jelly made with her own plump hands. When the mail-boat,
|
|
stopping for twenty-four hours on its way from Wellington to
|
|
San Francisco, blew the whistle that warned the passengers to
|
|
get on board, Tiare clasped me to her vast bosom, so that I
|
|
seemed to sink into a billowy sea, and pressed her red lips
|
|
to mine. Tears glistened in her eyes. And when we steamed
|
|
slowly out of the lagoon, making our way gingerly through the
|
|
opening in the reef, and then steered for the open sea,
|
|
a certain melancholy fell upon me. The breeze was laden still
|
|
with the pleasant odours of the land. Tahiti is very far
|
|
away, and I knew that I should never see it again. A chapter
|
|
of my life was closed, and I felt a little nearer to
|
|
inevitable death.
|
|
|
|
|
|
Not much more than a month later I was in London; and after I
|
|
had arranged certain matters which claimed my immediate
|
|
attention, thinking Mrs. Strickland might like to hear what I
|
|
knew of her husband's last years, I wrote to her. I had not
|
|
seen her since long before the war, and I had to look out her
|
|
address in the telephone-book. She made an appointment, and I went
|
|
to the trim little house on Campden Hill which she now inhabited.
|
|
She was by this time a woman of hard on sixty, but she
|
|
bore her years well, and no one would have taken her for
|
|
more than fifty. Her face, thin and not much lined, was of
|
|
the sort that ages gracefully, so that you thought in youth
|
|
she must have been a much handsomer woman than in fact she was.
|
|
Her hair, not yet very gray, was becomingly arranged,
|
|
and her black gown was modish. I remembered having heard that
|
|
her sister, Mrs. MacAndrew, outliving her husband but a couple
|
|
of years, had left money to Mrs. Strickland; and by the look
|
|
of the house and the trim maid who opened the door I judged
|
|
that it was a sum adequate to keep the widow in modest comfort.
|
|
|
|
When I was ushered into the drawing-room I found that Mrs.
|
|
Strickland had a visitor, and when I discovered who he was,
|
|
I guessed that I had been asked to come at just that time not
|
|
without intention. The caller was Mr. Van Busche Taylor,
|
|
an American, and Mrs. Strickland gave me particulars with a
|
|
charming smile of apology to him.
|
|
|
|
"You know, we English are so dreadfully ignorant. You must
|
|
forgive me if it's necessary to explain." Then she turned to
|
|
me. "Mr. Van Busche Taylor is the distinguished American
|
|
critic. If you haven't read his book your education has been
|
|
shamefully neglected, and you must repair the omission at
|
|
once. He's writing something about dear Charlie, and he's
|
|
come to ask me if I can help him."
|
|
|
|
Mr. Van Busche Taylor was a very thin man with a large, bald
|
|
head, bony and shining; and under the great dome of his skull
|
|
his face, yellow, with deep lines in it, looked very small.
|
|
He was quiet and exceedingly polite. He spoke with the accent
|
|
of New England, and there was about his demeanour a bloodless
|
|
frigidity which made me ask myself why on earth he was busying
|
|
himself with Charles Strickland. I had been slightly tickled
|
|
at the gentleness which Mrs. Strickland put into her mention
|
|
of her husband's name, and while the pair conversed I took
|
|
stock of the room in which we sat. Mrs. Strickland had moved
|
|
with the times. Gone were the Morris papers and gone the
|
|
severe cretonnes, gone were the Arundel prints that had
|
|
adorned the walls of her drawingroom in Ashley Gardens; the
|
|
room blazed with fantastic colour, and I wondered if she knew
|
|
that those varied hues, which fashion had imposed upon her,
|
|
were due to the dreams of a poor painter in a South Sea
|
|
island. She gave me the answer herself.
|
|
|
|
"What wonderful cushions you have," said Mr. Van Busche Taylor.
|
|
|
|
"Do you like them?" she said, smiling. "Bakst, you know."
|
|
|
|
And yet on the walls were coloured reproductions of several of
|
|
Strickland's best pictures, due to the enterprise of a
|
|
publisher in Berlin.
|
|
|
|
"You're looking at my pictures," she said, following my eyes.
|
|
"Of course, the originals are out of my reach, but it's a
|
|
comfort to have these. The publisher sent them to me himself.
|
|
They're a great consolation to me."
|
|
|
|
"They must be very pleasant to live with," said Mr. Van Busche Taylor.
|
|
|
|
"Yes; they're so essentially decorative."
|
|
|
|
"That is one of my profoundest convictions," said Mr. Van
|
|
Busche Taylor. "Great art is always decorative."
|
|
|
|
Their eyes rested on a nude woman suckling a baby, while a
|
|
girl was kneeling by their side holding out a flower to the
|
|
indifferent child. Looking over them was a wrinkled, scraggy hag.
|
|
It was Strickland's version of the Holy Family. I suspected
|
|
that for the figures had sat his household above Taravao,
|
|
and the woman and the baby were Ata and his first son.
|
|
I asked myself if Mrs. Strickland had any inkling of the facts.
|
|
|
|
The conversation proceeded, and I marvelled at the tact with which
|
|
Mr. Van Busche Taylor avoided all subjects that might have been
|
|
in the least embarrassing, and at the ingenuity with which
|
|
Mrs. Strickland, without saying a word that was untrue, insinuated
|
|
that her relations with her husband had always been perfect.
|
|
At last Mr. Van Busche Taylor rose to go. Holding his
|
|
hostess' hand, he made her a graceful, though perhaps too elaborate,
|
|
speech of thanks, and left us.
|
|
|
|
"I hope he didn't bore you," she said, when the door closed
|
|
behind him. "Of course it's a nuisance sometimes, but I feel
|
|
it's only right to give people any information I can about Charlie.
|
|
There's a certain responsibility about having been the
|
|
wife of a genius."
|
|
|
|
She looked at me with those pleasant eyes of hers, which had
|
|
remained as candid and as sympathetic as they had been more
|
|
than twenty years before. I wondered if she was making a fool of me.
|
|
|
|
"Of course you've given up your business," I said.
|
|
|
|
"Oh, yes," she answered airily. "I ran it more by way of a
|
|
hobby than for any other reason, and my children persuaded me
|
|
to sell it. They thought I was overtaxing my strength."
|
|
|
|
I saw that Mrs. Strickland had forgotten that she had ever
|
|
done anything so disgraceful as to work for her living.
|
|
She had the true instinct of the nice woman that it is only
|
|
really decent for her to live on other people's money.
|
|
|
|
"They're here now," she said. "I thought they'd, like to hear
|
|
what you had to say about their father. You remember Robert,
|
|
don't you? I'm glad to say he's been recommended for the
|
|
Military Cross."
|
|
|
|
She went to the door and called them. There entered a tall
|
|
man in khaki, with the parson's collar, handsome in a somewhat
|
|
heavy fashion, but with the frank eyes that I remembered in
|
|
him as a boy. He was followed by his sister. She must have
|
|
been the same age as was her mother when first I knew her, and
|
|
she was very like her. She too gave one the impression that
|
|
as a girl she must have been prettier than indeed she was.
|
|
|
|
"I suppose you don't remember them in the least," said
|
|
Mrs. Strickland, proud and smiling. "My daughter is now
|
|
Mrs. Ronaldson. Her husband's a Major in the Gunners."
|
|
|
|
"He's by way of being a pukka soldier, you know," said
|
|
Mrs. Ronaldson gaily. "That's why he's only a Major."
|
|
|
|
I remembered my anticipation long ago that she would marry a soldier.
|
|
It was inevitable. She had all the graces of the soldier's wife.
|
|
She was civil and affable, but she could hardly conceal her intimate
|
|
conviction that she was not quite as others were. Robert was breezy.
|
|
|
|
"It's a bit of luck that I should be in London when you turned
|
|
up," he said. "I've only got three days' leave."
|
|
|
|
"He's dying to get back," said his mother.
|
|
|
|
"Well, I don't mind confessing it, I have a rattling good time
|
|
at the front. I've made a lot of good pals. It's a first-rate life.
|
|
Of course war's terrible, and all that sort of thing;
|
|
but it does bring out the best qualities in a man,
|
|
there's no denying that."
|
|
|
|
Then I told them what I had learned about Charles Strickland
|
|
in Tahiti. I thought it unnecessary to say anything of Ata
|
|
and her boy, but for the rest I was as accurate as I could be.
|
|
When I had narrated his lamentable death I ceased. For a
|
|
minute or two we were all silent. Then Robert Strickland
|
|
struck a match and lit a cigarette.
|
|
|
|
"The mills of God grind slowly, but they grind exceeding small,"
|
|
he said, somewhat impressively.
|
|
|
|
Mrs. Strickland and Mrs. Ronaldson looked down with a slightly
|
|
pious expression which indicated, I felt sure, that they
|
|
thought the quotation was from Holy Writ. Indeed, I was
|
|
unconvinced that Robert Strickland did not share their illusion.
|
|
I do not know why I suddenly thought of Strickland's
|
|
son by Ata. They had told me he was a merry,
|
|
light-hearted youth. I saw him, with my mind's eye, on the
|
|
schooner on which he worked, wearing nothing but a pair of
|
|
dungarees; and at night, when the boat sailed along easily
|
|
before a light breeze, and the sailors were gathered on the
|
|
upper deck, while the captain and the supercargo lolled in
|
|
deck-chairs, smoking their pipes, I saw him dance with another lad,
|
|
dance wildly, to the wheezy music of the concertina.
|
|
Above was the blue sky, and the stars, and all about the
|
|
desert of the Pacific Ocean.
|
|
|
|
A quotation from the Bible came to my lips, but I held my tongue,
|
|
for I know that clergymen think it a little
|
|
blasphemous when the laity poach upon their preserves.
|
|
My Uncle Henry, for twenty-seven years Vicar of Whitstable,
|
|
was on these occasions in the habit of saying that the devil
|
|
could always quote scripture to his purpose. He remembered the
|
|
days when you could get thirteen Royal Natives for a shilling.
|
|
|
|
|
|
The end of the
|
|
Project Gutenberg Etext of Moon and Sixpence by Somerset Maugham
|
|
|
|
|